Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n church_n zeal_n zealous_a 144 3 9.0129 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27006 Reliquiæ Baxterianæ, or, Mr. Richard Baxters narrative of the most memorable passages of his life and times faithfully publish'd from his own original manuscript by Matthew Sylvester. Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691.; Sylvester, Matthew, 1636 or 7-1708. 1696 (1696) Wing B1370; ESTC R16109 1,288,485 824

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o more_o christian_n and_o orderly_a manage_n of_o this_o our_o brotherly_a agreement_n and_o association_n we_o do_v agree_v first_o that_o every_o man_n at_o his_o enter_v into_o this_o society_n tender_v we_o a_o certificate_n of_o his_o painfulness_n in_o the_o ministry_n and_o of_o his_o godliness_n in_o conversation_n under_o the_o hand_n of_o two_o godly_a minister_n at_o least_o not_o of_o the_o society_n and_o of_o two_o or_o three_o godly_a christian_n know_v to_o some_o of_o the_o society_n and_o that_o all_o the_o certificate_n be_v bring_v into_o and_o keep_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o one_o of_o the_o brethren_n that_o by_o common_a consent_n shall_v be_v appoint_v thereunto_o second_o that_o every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o this_o society_n and_o agreement_n be_v desire_v to_o express_v his_o willingness_n in_o case_n of_o any_o miscarriage_n whereby_o he_o shall_v give_v just_a occasion_n of_o offence_n unto_o the_o society_n to_o submit_v unto_o the_o reproof_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o whole_a or_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o society_n so_o farforth_o as_o their_o reproof_n and_o determination_n shall_v be_v warrant_v by_o the_o scripture_n three_o that_o our_o meeting_n be_v constant_o begin_v and_o end_v with_o prayer_n to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o moderator_n pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la who_o at_o the_o first_o meeting_n be_v to_o be_v choose_v for_o the_o meeting_n next_o follow_v and_o so_o continual_o for_o the_o better_a order_n of_o our_o meeting_n and_o debate_n four_o that_o no_o private_a matter_n be_v propound_v in_o our_o general_n meeting_n but_o by_o the_o moderator_n and_o that_o not_o while_o any_o public_a business_n be_v in_o debate_n without_o the_o leave_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a society_n or_o the_o major_a part_n five_o that_o any_o brother_n that_o shall_v be_v willing_a to_o join_v hereafter_o into_o this_o society_n may_v upon_o the_o same_o term_n be_v free_o accept_v into_o this_o brotherly_a agreement_n the_o independent_a church_n also_o in_o ireland_n lead_v by_o dr._n winter_n pastor_n of_o their_o church_n in_o dublin_n associate_v with_o the_o moderate_a presbyterian_o there_o upon_o these_o provocation_n and_o the_o persuasion_n of_o col._n john_n bridges_n my_o neighbour_n and_o they_o send_v we_o together_o their_o desire_n of_o correspondency_n with_o which_o our_o answer_n be_v here_o subjoin_v honour_a and_o belove_a brethren_n in_o the_o lord_n it_o have_v please_v the_o good_a hand_n of_o heaven_n to_o bring_v into_o our_o part_n our_o much_o esteem_a friend_n coll._n bridges_n in_o much_o mercy_n to_o we_o all_o and_o by_o he_o as_o also_o by_o several_a other_o hand_n to_o give_v we_o some_o acquaintance_n with_o the_o state_n of_o christ_n affair_n among_o you_o which_o very_o much_o oblige_v we_o to_o sympathize_v with_o you_o according_a to_o the_o several_a administration_n of_o providence_n as_o become_v the_o relation_n of_o fellow-member_n and_o subject_n in_o christ_n kingdom_n his_o return_n into_o your_o part_n afford_v we_o a_o opportunity_n to_o signify_v the_o same_o and_o how_o much_o we_o desire_v to_o manifest_v it_o by_o real_a demonstration_n through_o the_o good_a will_n of_o he_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o bush._n in_o order_n thereunto_o we_o think_v fit_a to_o testify_v our_o willingness_n to_o contribute_v our_o utmost_a through_o his_o assistance_n to_o the_o maintain_n of_o a_o christian_a correspondency_n between_o we_o that_o we_o may_v mutual_o receive_v and_o give_v the_o right_a hand_n of_o fellowship_n in_o a_o season_n of_o so_o much_o need_n whilst_o the_o common_a enemy_n be_v still_o labour_v to_o divide_v and_o destroy_v the_o friend_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o part_n it_o concern_v we_o near_o to_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o industrious_a and_o active_a in_o the_o promote_a of_o christ_n interest_n against_o his_o power_n and_o policy_n the_o bitter_a fruit_n of_o unchristian_a division_n we_o have_v too_o much_o taste_v of_o and_o through_o the_o lord_n goodness_n have_v reap_v already_o some_o benefit_n from_o our_o brotherly_a association_n whereinto_o we_o enter_v not_o long_o ago_o the_o present_a condition_n of_o god_n people_n in_o foreign_a part_n as_o among_o we_o call_v a_o loud_a for_o a_o more_o cordial_a union_n and_o communion_n among_o all_o such_o who_o desire_v to_o fear_v his_o name_n it_o be_v therefore_o our_o heart_n desire_n not_o to_o be_v want_v in_o our_o faith_n and_o prayer_n resolve_n and_o endeavour_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o those_o exceed_a great_a and_o precious_a truth_n do_v eminent_o centre_n in_o these_o latter_a day_n that_o christ_n friend_n may_v receive_v one_o mind_n and_o heart_n to_o serve_v he_o with_o one_o lip_n and_o shoulder_n we_o be_v thereby_o much_o encourage_v to_o request_v your_o christian_a assistance_n and_o brotherly_a correspondency_n that_o we_o may_v all_o be_v the_o better_a able_a in_o our_o several_a station_n and_o relation_n to_o promote_v more_o vigorous_o the_o interest_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o people_n after_o the_o sad_a shake_n of_o this_o land_n and_o his_o many_o turn_n of_o thing_n upside_o down_o the_o lord_n be_v please_v to_o promise_v we_o a_o little_a revive_v and_o to_o open_v a_o door_n of_o hope_n even_o in_o the_o valley_n of_o anchor_n your_o favourable_a help_n be_v therefore_o earnest_o crave_v that_o ireland_n may_v once_o more_o partake_v of_o the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o want_n of_o many_o thousand_o starve_a soul_n may_v be_v seasonable_o supply_v with_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n the_o particular_a of_o our_o affair_n coll._n bridges_n will_v give_v you_o a_o more_o exact_a account_n of_o and_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o convey_v to_o we_o the_o signification_n of_o your_o christian_a compliance_n with_o our_o long_a desire_n to_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o most_o high_a we_o humble_o recommend_v the_o care_n of_o the_o several_a nursery_n of_o christ_n among_o you_o that_o the_o plant_n of_o his_o house_n may_v flourish_v in_o his_o court_n through_o the_o supply_n of_o christ_n spirit_n in_o who_o we_o cordial_o desire_v to_o be_v and_o appear_v your_o affectionate_a brethren_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o serve_v you_o through_o grace_n sam._n winter_n pastor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o dublin_n claudius_n gilbert_n pastor_n of_o the_o church_n at_o limerick_n ed._n reynolds_n m._n j._n warren_n m._n will._n markham_n tho._n osmonton_n m._n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o associate_v church_n of_o christ_n in_o ireland_n dublin_n 5._o m._n 8._o d._n 1655._o july_n 5._o these_o for_o the_o reverend_n mr._n richard_n baxter_n pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o kiderminster_n to_o be_v by_o he_o communicate_v to_o the_o several_a church_n of_o that_o association_n our_o answer_n whereto_o be_v as_o follow_v much_o honour_a and_o belove_a brethren_n in_o the_o lord_n we_o receive_v your_o welcome_a line_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o faithful_a and_o much_o honour_a friend_n coll._n john_n bridges_n it_o much_o rejoice_v we_o to_o hear_v of_o your_o brotherly_a affeciation_n and_o the_o success_n and_o more_o that_o your_o heart_n be_v enlarge_v with_o such_o desire_n for_o the_o far_a promote_a of_o this_o heal_a work_n and_o that_o you_o thus_o breath_n after_o the_o union_n of_o the_o saint_n it_o do_v not_o only_o rejoice_v we_o on_o your_o own_o behalf_n and_o on_o the_o behalf_n of_o that_o desolate_a land_n where_o you_o abide_v but_o also_o on_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_a because_o we_o seem_v to_o discern_v the_o gracious_a thought_n of_o god_n unto_o his_o people_n in_o sound_v a_o retreat_n to_o their_o unbrother_o contention_n by_o send_v forth_o that_o spirit_n of_o love_n and_o peace_n which_o we_o know_v must_v build_v we_o up_o if_o ever_o we_o be_v build_v when_o god_n be_v pull_v down_o and_o lay_v waste_a be_v witheld_a this_o mercy_n and_o let_v out_o upon_o his_o church_n a_o spirit_n of_o contention_n bitterness_n and_o division_n which_o have_v go_v on_o to_o demolish_v and_o break_v in_o piece_n and_o make_v our_o own_o hand_n the_o executioner_n of_o those_o heavy_a judgement_n which_o have_v lay_v we_o so_o long_o in_o shame_n and_o sorrow_n and_o fill_v our_o enemy_n mouth_n with_o scorn_n while_o this_o evil_a spirit_n that_o make_v desolate_a do_v prevail_v division_n seem_v aimable_fw-fr and_o divide_v principle_n seem_v glorious_a truth_n and_o all_o motion_n to_o reconciliation_n be_v unsavoury_a thing_n and_o reject_v as_o a_o defection_n from_o truth_n or_o zeal_n and_o as_o a_o carnal_a compliance_n with_o the_o way_n of_o darkness_n and_o even_o those_o that_o be_v zealous_a for_o truth_n and_o holiness_n be_v too_o many_o of_o they_o cold_a for_o peace_n and_o unity_n read_v those_o scripture_n which_o so_o earnest_o press_v they_o as_o if_o they_o read_v they_o not_o never_o
and_o government_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n be_v evident_a to_o the_o world_n and_o this_o little_a part_n of_o the_o world_n our_o own_o dominion_n have_v have_v so_o late_a experience_n of_o it_o that_o we_o may_v very_o well_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o conclusion_n without_o enlarge_n ourselves_o in_o discourse_n upon_o it_o it_o be_v a_o subject_a we_o have_v have_v frequent_a occasion_n to_o contemplate_v upon_o and_o to_o lament_v abroad_o as_o well_o as_o at_o home_n in_o our_o letter_n to_o the_o speaker_n of_o the_o h._n of_o commons_o from_o breda_n we_o declare_v how_o much_o we_o desire_v the_o advancement_n and_o propagation_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n that_o neither_o the_o unkindness_n of_o those_o of_o the_o same_o faith_n towards_o we_o nor_o the_o civility_n and_o obligation_n from_o those_o of_o a_o contrary_a profession_n of_o both_o which_o we_o have_v have_v abundant_a evidence_n can_v in_o the_o least_o degree_n startle_v we_o or_o make_v we_o swerve_v from_o it_o and_o that_o nothing_o can_v be_v propose_v to_o manifest_v our_o zeal_n and_o affection_n for_o it_o to_o which_o we_o will_v not_o ready_o consent_v and_o we_o say_v then_o that_o we_o do_v hope_n in_o due_a time_n ourselves_o to_o propose_v somewhat_o for_o the_o propagation_n of_o it_o that_o will_v satisfy_v the_o world_n that_o we_o have_v always_o make_v it_o both_o our_o care_n and_o our_o study_n and_o have_v enough_o observe_v what_o be_v most_o like_a to_o bring_v disadvantage_n to_o it_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v we_o do_v think_v ourselves_o the_o more_o competent_a to_o propose_v and_o with_o god_n assistance_n to_o determine_v many_o thing_n now_o in_o difference_n from_o the_o time_n we_o have_v spend_v and_o the_o experience_n we_o have_v have_v in_o most_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n abroad_o in_o france_n in_o the_o low_a conntrey_n and_o in_o germany_n where_o we_o have_v have_v frequent_a conference_n with_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n who_o have_v unanimous_o lament_v the_o great_a reproach_n the_o protestant_a religion_n undergo_v from_o the_o distemper_n and_o too_o notorious_a schism_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n in_o england_n and_o as_o the_o most_o learned_a among_o they_o have_v always_o with_o great_a submission_n and_o reverence_n acknowledge_v and_o magnify_v the_o establish_v government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o great_a countenance_n and_o shelter_v the_o protestant_a religion_n receive_v from_o it_o before_o these_o unhappy_a time_n so_o many_o of_o they_o have_v with_o great_a ingenuity_n and_o sorrow_n confess_v that_o they_o be_v too_o easy_o mislead_v by_o misinformation_n and_o prejudice_n into_o some_o disesteem_a of_o it_o as_o if_o it_o have_v too_o much_o comply_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n whereas_o they_o now_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v the_o best_a fence_n god_n have_v yet_o raise_v against_o popery_n in_o the_o world_n and_o we_o be_v persuade_v they_o do_v with_o great_a zeal_n wish_v it_o restore_v to_o its_o old_a dignity_n and_o veneration_n when_o we_o be_v in_o holland_n we_o be_v attend_v by_o many_o grave_a and_o learned_a minister_n from_o hence_o who_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o the_o most_o able_a and_o principal_a assertor_n of_o the_o presbyterian_a opinion_n with_o who_o we_o have_v as_o much_o conference_n as_o the_o multitude_n of_o affair_n which_o be_v then_o upon_o we_o will_v permit_v we_o to_o have_v and_o to_o our_o great_a satisfaction_n and_o comfort_n find_v they_o person_n full_a of_o affection_n to_o we_o of_o zeal_n for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o state_n and_o neither_o enemy_n as_o they_o have_v be_v give_v out_o to_o be_v of_o episcopacy_n or_o liturgy_n but_o modest_o to_o desire_v such_o alteration_n in_o either_o as_o without_o shake_a foundation_n may_v best_o allay_v the_o present_a distemper_n which_o the_o indisposition_n of_o the_o time_n and_o the_o tenderness_n of_o some_o man_n conscience_n have_v contract_v for_o the_o better_a do_v whereof_o we_o intend_v upon_o our_o first_o arrival_n in_o this_o kingdom_n to_o call_v a_o synod_n of_o divine_n as_o the_o most_o proper_a expedient_a to_o provide_v a_o proper_a remedy_n for_o all_o those_o difference_n and_o dissatisfaction_n which_o have_v or_o shall_v arise_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o publish_v in_o our_o declaration_n from_o breda_n a_o liberty_n to_o tender_a conscience_n and_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v disquiet_v or_o call_v in_o question_n for_o difference_n of_o opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o do_v not_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o consent_v to_o such_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n as_o shall_v upon_o mature_a deliberation_n be_v offer_v to_o we_o for_o the_o full_a grant_v that_o indulgence_n whilst_o we_o continue_v in_o this_o temper_n of_o mind_n and_o resolution_n and_o have_v so_o far_o comply_v with_o the_o persuasion_n of_o particular_a person_n and_o the_o distemper_n of_o the_o time_n as_o to_o be_v content_v with_o the_o exercise_n of_o our_o religion_n in_o our_o own_o chapel_n according_a to_o the_o constant_a practice_n and_o law_n establish_v without_o enjoin_v that_o practice_n and_o the_o observation_n of_o those_o law_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o which_o we_o have_v undergo_v the_o censure_n of_o many_o as_o if_o we_o be_v without_o that_o zeal_n for_o the_o church_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v and_o which_o by_o god_n grace_n we_o shall_v always_o retain_v we_o have_v find_v ourselves_o not_o so_o candid_o deal_v with_o as_o we_o have_v deserve_v and_o that_o there_o be_v unquiet_a and_o restless_a spirit_n who_o without_o abate_v any_o of_o their_o own_o distemper_n in_o recompense_n of_o the_o moderation_n they_o find_v in_o we_o continue_v their_o bitterness_n against_o the_o church_n and_o endeavour_v to_o raise_v jealousy_n of_o we_o and_o to_o lessen_v our_o reputation_n by_o their_o reproach_n as_o if_o we_o be_v not_o true_a to_o the_o profession_n we_o have_v make_v and_o in_o order_n thereunto_o they_o have_v very_o unreasonable_o cause_v to_o be_v print_v publish_v and_o disperse_v throughout_o the_o kingdom_n a_o declaration_n heretofore_o print_v in_o our_o name_n during_o the_o time_n of_o our_o be_v in_o scotland_n of_o which_o we_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o than_o that_o the_o circumstance_n by_o which_o we_o be_v enforce_v to_o sign_n that_o declaration_n be_v enough_o know_v to_o the_o world_n that_o we_o do_v from_o the_o moment_n it_o pass_v our_o hand_n ask_v god_n forgiveness_n for_o our_o part_n in_o it_o which_o we_o hope_v he_o will_v never_o lay_v to_o our_o charge_n and_o that_o the_o worthy_a and_o great_a part_n of_o that_o nation_n do_v even_o then_o detest_v and_o abhor_v the_o ill_a usage_n of_o we_o in_o that_o particular_a when_o the_o same_o tyranny_n be_v exercise_v there_o by_o the_o power_n of_o a_o few_o ill_a man_n which_o at_o that_o time_n have_v spread_v itself_o over_o this_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o expect_v that_o we_o shall_v at_o this_o season_n when_o we_o be_v do_v all_o we_o can_v to_o wipe_v out_o the_o memory_n of_o all_o that_o have_v be_v do_v amiss_o by_o other_o man_n and_o we_o thank_v god_n have_v wipe_v it_o out_o of_o our_o own_o remembrance_n have_v be_v ourselves_o assault_v with_o those_o reproach_n which_o we_o will_v likewise_o forget_v since_o the_o print_n of_o this_o declaration_n several_a seditious_a pamphlet_n and_o query_n have_v be_v publish_v and_o scatter_v abroad_o to_o infuse_v dislike_n and_o jealousy_n into_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n and_o of_o the_o army_n and_o some_o who_o ought_v rather_o to_o have_v repent_v their_o former_a mischief_n they_o have_v wrought_v than_o to_o have_v endeavour_v to_o improve_v it_o have_v have_v the_o hardiness_n to_o publish_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n against_o which_o no_o man_n with_o who_o we_o have_v confer_v have_v except_v aught_o to_o be_v reform_v as_o well_o as_o the_o discipline_n this_o over-passionate_a and_o turbulent_a way_n of_o proceed_v and_o the_o impatience_n we_o find_v in_o many_o for_o some_o speedy_a determination_n in_o these_o matter_n whereby_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n may_v be_v compose_v and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n establish_v have_v prevail_v with_o we_o to_o invert_v the_o method_n we_o have_v propose_v to_o ourselves_o and_o even_o in_o order_n to_o the_o better_a call_v and_o compose_v of_o a_o synod_n which_o the_o present_a jealousy_n will_v hardly_o agree_v upon_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n bless_a spirit_n which_o we_o daily_o invoke_v and_o supplicate_v to_o give_v some_o determination_n ourselves_o to_o the_o matter_n in_o difference_n until_o such_o a_o synod_n may_v be_v call_v as_o may_v without_o
symptom_n of_o a_o large_a and_o noble_a soul_n history_n shall_v inform_v admonish_v instruct_v and_o reclaim_v reform_v encourage_v man_n that_o read_v it_o and_o therefore_o they_o that_o write_v it_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n e._n discern_v thing_n excellent_a and_o those_o thing_n in_o their_o difference_n each_o from_o other_o and_o in_o their_o importance_n to_o the_o reader_n and_o so_o take_v care_n that_o nothing_o doubtful_a false_a impertinent_a mean_a injurious_a cloudy_a or_o needless_o provoke_v or_o reflect_v be_v expose_v to_o public_a view_n by_o they_o nor_o any_o thing_n excessive_a or_o defective_a as_o relate_v to_o the_o just_a and_o worthy_a end_n of_o history_n the_o author_n of_o the_o subsequent_a history_n now_o with_o god_n have_v a_o eagles_n eye_n a_o honest_a heart_n a_o thoughtful_a soul_n a_o search_a and_o considerate_a spirit_n and_o a_o concern_v frame_n of_o mind_n to_o let_v the_o present_a and_o succeed_a generation_n due_o know_v the_o real_a and_o true_a state_n and_o issue_n of_o the_o occurrence_n and_o transaction_n of_o his_o age_n and_o day_n and_o how_o much_o judgement_n truth_n and_o candour_n appear_v in_o his_o follow_a account_n of_o thing_n the_o candid_a and_o impartial_a reader_n will_v easy_o and_o quick_o be_v resolve_v about_o scandal_n arise_v from_o ignorance_n and_o misreport_n of_o what_o relate_v to_o our_o church_n and_o state_n great_o affect_v his_o very_a tender_a spirit_n and_o the_o removal_n and_o prevention_n of_o they_o and_o of_o what_o gild_n calamity_n and_o judgement_n may_v or_o do_v attend_v those_o scandal_n be_v what_o induce_v mr._n baxter_n to_o leave_v posterity_n this_o history_n of_o his_o life_n and_o time_n §_o iii_o memorable_a person_n consultation_n action_n and_o event_n with_o their_o respective_a epoch_n succession_n and_o period_n be_v the_o subject_a matter_n of_o history_n propriety_n clearness_n and_o vigour_n of_o expression_n be_v what_o due_o and_o grateful_o represent_v the_o matter_n to_o the_o reader_n accurate_a method_n give_v advantage_n to_o the_o memory_n as_o well_o as_o satisfaction_n to_o the_o judgement_n the_o faithfulness_n fullness_n and_o freedom_n of_o relation_n conciliate_v a_o good_a reputation_n to_o the_o writer_n by_o its_o convince_a influence_n upon_o the_o reader_n be_v mind_n and_o thus_o it_o powerful_o claim_v and_o extort_v his_o submission_n to_o the_o evident_a credibility_n of_o what_o he_o peruse_v and_o the_o weight_n and_o usefulness_n of_o the_o thing_n relate_v make_v the_o reader_n serious_a and_o concern_v to_o observe_v what_o he_o read_v for_o find_v the_o matter_n great_a the_o expression_n proper_a and_o lively_a the_o current_n of_o the_o history_n orderly_o and_o exact_a and_o the_o purpose_n and_o end_v various_a and_o important_a which_o the_o history_n subserve_v he_o according_o value_v and_o use_v it_o as_o a_o treasure_n and_o from_o thence_o he_o extract_v such_o maxim_n and_o principle_n as_o may_v great_o bestead_v he_o in_o every_o exigence_n and_o in_o every_o station_n and_o article_n of_o trust_n and_o concern_v and_o negotiation_n history_n tell_v we_o who_o have_v be_v upon_o the_o stage_n how_o they_o come_v into_o business_n and_o trust_n what_o be_v the_o compass_n and_o import_n of_o their_o province_n what_o they_o themselves_o therein_o signify_v to_o other_o and_o what_o other_o to_o they_o and_o what_o all_o avail_v to_o posterity_n and_o how_o they_o go_v off_o and_o so_o what_o figure_n they_o most_o deserve_v to_o make_v in_o the_o record_n of_o time_n §_o iv_o he_o that_o well_o consider_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n his_o relation_n to_o god_n god_n govern_v of_o man_n and_o the_o conduct_n of_o providence_n pursuant_n to_o god_n concern_v with_o man_n and_o their_o concern_v with_o he_o as_o also_o the_o discipline_n and_o interest_n of_o the_o holy_a war_n with_o satan_n will_v read_v history_n with_o a_o fine_a eye_n and_o to_o better_a purpose_n than_o other_o can_v to_o covet_v endeavour_n and_o obtain_v ability_n and_o furniture_n from_o history_n philology_n divinity_n etc._n etc._n to_o minister_v to_o discursive_a entertainment_n or_o selfconceitedness_a ambition_n preferment_n or_o reputation_n with_o man_n be_v a_o design_n when_o ultimate_a so_o mean_v in_o god_n eye_n so_o odious_a and_o noisome_a to_o other_o when_o by_o they_o discern_v and_o so_o uncomfortable_a and_o fatal_a to_o ourselves_o when_v at_o last_o account_v for_o as_o that_o no_o wise_a man_n will_v terminate_v and_o centre_n himself_o or_o his_o study_n there_o i_o have_v see_v all_o sort_n of_o learn_v different_o place_v use_v and_o issue_v i_o can_v stay_v patient_o to_o see_v the_o last_o result_v of_o all_o i_o have_v see_v learn_v excellent_o implant_v in_o a_o gracious_a heart_n so_o it_o be_v in_o mr._n baxter_n and_o in_o several_a prelate_n and_o conformist_n and_o nonconformist_n and_o other_o it_o be_v so_o at_o this_o day_n i_o have_v see_v it_o without_o grace_n or_o not_o so_o evident_o under_o the_o influence_n and_o conduct_n of_o grace_n as_o i_o have_v great_o desire_v it_o may_v have_v be_v and_o here_o what_o partiality_n malignity_n faction_n domination_n superciliousness_n and_o invective_n have_v his_o history_n and_o other_o learn_v minister_v unto_o indeed_o sanctify_a learning_n have_v a_o lovely_a show_n and_o the_o learning_n of_o graceless_a person_n have_v in_o many_o instance_n and_o evidence_n great_o befriend_v god_n interest_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o the_o knowledge_n which_o can_v not_o keep_v some_o from_o do_v mischief_n in_o the_o world_n and_o from_o their_o be_v fit_v for_o hell_n and_o from_o draw_v other_o after_o they_o thither_o have_v yet_o help_v other_o to_o heavenliness_n and_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o well_o consider_v what_o man_n be_v to_o god_n and_o god_n to_o man_n what_o a_o enemy_n degenerate_a man_n be_v to_o god_n and_o himself_o what_o a_o state_n and_o frame_n and_o posture_n of_o war_n sin_n have_v put_v man_n into_o both_o against_o god_n themselves_o and_o each_o other_o what_o a_o enemy_n satan_n be_v to_o all_o and_o what_o advantage_n sin_n give_v he_o against_o we_o and_o how_o christ_n be_v engage_v against_o satan_n for_o we_o as_o the_o captain_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o how_o he_o manage_n this_o war_n by_o his_o spirit_n oracle_n ordinance_n officer_n and_o under-agent_n in_o church_n and_o state_n and_o by_o the_o conduct_n of_o providence_n over_o crown_v head_n throne_n senate_n army_n navy_n great_a and_o less_o community_n and_o single_a person_n in_o all_o thing_n do_v by_o they_o for_o they_o or_o upon_o they_o or_o against_o they_o how_o he_o use_v and_o influence_n the_o faculty_n action_n project_n confederacy_n and_o interest_n of_o man_n by_o poize_v they_o change_v they_o and_o turn_v they_o to_o his_o own_o purpose_n and_o praise_n he_o i_o say_v that_o well_o attend_v to_o these_o thing_n in_o his_o historical_a readins_n and_o studies_n will_v to_o his_o profit_n and_o delight_n discern_v god_n providence_n in_o and_o over_o the_o affair_n of_o man_n to_o be_v expressive_a of_o god_n name_n minister_a to_o his_o avouch_v purpose_n and_o a_o great_a testimony_n to_o his_o word_n and_o son_n and_o to_o his_o covenant_n and_o servant_n §_o v._o and_o such_o a_o person_n be_v the_o reverend_a author_n and_o in_o part_n the_o subject_a matter_n of_o the_o subsequent_a treatise_n he_o be_v a_o early_a votary_n to_o his_o god_n so_o early_o as_o that_o he_o know_v not_o when_o god_n engage_v he_o first_o unto_o himself_o and_o hence_o he_o in_o great_a measure_n escape_v those_o evil_a habit_n and_o calamity_n which_o old_a age_n ordinary_o pay_v so_o dear_a for_o though_o he_o lament_v the_o carelessness_n and_o intemperance_n of_o his_o first_o childish_a and_o youthful_a day_n and_o if_o the_o reader_n think_v it_o strange_a and_o mean_a that_o these_o and_o some_o other_o passage_n inferioris_fw-la subsellij_fw-la shall_v be_v insert_v among_o so_o many_o thing_n far_o more_o considerable_a write_v by_o himself_o and_o publish_v by_o i_o i_o crave_v leave_n to_o reply_v 1._o that_o conscience_n be_v a_o tender_a thing_n and_o when_o awaken_v it_o account_v no_o sin_n small_a nor_o any_o calamity_n below_o most_o serious_a thought_n and_o sensible_a and_o smart_a resentment_n that_o evident_o spring_v from_o the_o least_o miscarriage_n which_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v prevent_v 2._o that_o the_o apprehension_n of_o approach_a death_n make_v he_o severe_a in_o his_o scrutiny_n and_o reflection_n 3._o that_o he_o thence_o think_v himself_o concern_v and_o bind_v in_o duty_n to_o warn_v other_o against_o all_o which_o he_o think_v or_o find_v so_o very_o prejudicial_a to_o his_o own_o soul_n and_o body_n 4._o that_o as_o mean_a passage_n as_o these_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o ancient_n and_o modern_a life_n and_o
amiss_o or_o right_a either_o in_o himself_o or_o other_o etc._n etc._n 4._o he_o be_v concern_v to_o prevent_v misapprehension_n prejudice_n censure_n and_o scandal_n for_o time_n to_o come_v to_o call_v the_o guilty_a to_o repentance_n to_o clear_v the_o innocent_a and_o warn_v the_o present_a and_o succeed_a generation_n against_o their_o be_v split_v upon_o the_o like_a rock_n to_o lay_v all_o miscarriage_n at_o their_o right_a door_n and_o to_o undeceive_v foreign_a church_n and_o kingdom_n and_o to_o deliver_v they_o from_o be_v impose_v on_o by_o false_a representation_n of_o our_o affair_n at_o home_n 5._o he_o have_v a_o acrimonious_a pungent_a s●●le_n indeed_o contract_v by_o his_o plain_a deal_n with_o obstinate_a sinner_n which_o he_o tell_v i_o be_v much_o severe_a than_o his_o spirit_n be_v he_o love_v to_o give_v sin_n and_o sinner_n what_o name_n may_v make_v themselves_o and_o all_o man_n most_o sensible_a of_o their_o aggravate_v crime_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v averse_a from_o blacken_v they_o more_o than_o there_o be_v reason_n for_o in_o his_o judgement_n and_o from_o conclude_a man_n graceless_a or_o hopeless_a from_o any_o particular_a misdemeanour_n or_o defect_n 6._o he_o be_v public_a spirit_v and_o value_v not_o nor_o will_v he_o be_v sway_v by_o party_n name_n or_o interest_n his_o soul_n be_v draw_v out_o to_o a_o great_a length_n and_o wrought_v into_o a_o fine_a temper_n than_o to_o overlook_a any_o thing_n true_o excellent_a and_o worthy_a in_o any_o one_o though_o of_o a_o different_a character_n and_o persuasion_n from_o himself_o as_o to_o thing_n of_o a_o low_a nature_n and_o consistent_a with_o the_o spirit_n and_o great_a design_n of_o christianity_n i_o have_v hear_v he_o great_a and_o copious_a in_o his_o commendation_n of_o several_a prelate_n and_o conformist_n and_o let_v the_o reader_n pardon_v i_o if_o i_o tell_v he_o the_o right_a reverend_n the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n dr._n tenison_n the_o reverend_n present_a bishop_n of_o worcester_n and_o ely_n be_v express_o mention_v by_o he_o to_o i_o as_o person_n great_o admire_v and_o high_o value_v by_o he_o and_o of_o their_o readiness_n to_o serve_v the_o public_a interest_n both_o civil_a and_o religious_a he_o tell_v i_o he_o doubt_v not_o and_o for_o several_a of_o their_o excellent_a and_o useful_a labour_n i_o think_v myself_o among_o many_o other_o oblige_v to_o bless_v god_n and_o thank_v they_o though_o i_o be_v unknown_a to_o they_o and_o indeed_o deserve_o below_o their_o notice_n his_o great_a concern_v and_o vehement_a desire_n be_v for_o a_o comprehension_n fit_a to_o include_v all_o peaceable_a useful_a sober_a person_n and_o he_o think_v it_o not_o impossible_a nor_o incongruous_a to_o fix_v upon_o foundation_n large_a and_o strong_a enough_o so_o as_o to_o take_v in_o all_o that_o may_v fit_o contribute_v to_o public_a welfare_n into_o one_o good_a constitution_n and_o establishment_n and_o to_o my_o knowledge_n many_o be_v animate_v with_o the_o same_o desire_n may_v not_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v more_o evident_o beautiful_a large_a and_o safe_a hereby_o and_o though_o authority_n have_v not_o yet_o wrought_v we_o up_o to_o this_o i_o humble_o judge_v that_o amicable_a conversation_n among_o those_o that_o attend_v our_o respective_a ministry_n and_o among_o we_o minister_n ourselves_o will_v show_v to_o all_o that_o we_o be_v propense_a to_o peace_n and_o love_n and_o to_o mutual_a usefulness_n and_o endearment_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o most_o strange_a and_o hateful_a that_o different_a sentiment_n about_o disputable_a matter_n shall_v alienate_v affection_n banish_v civility_n of_o conversation_n and_o scarce_o be_v inquire_v into_o and_o debate_v about_o without_o scurrilous_a reflection_n and_o inflame_a passion_n rage_n and_o force_n may_v produce_v hypocrite_n or_o adversary_n but_o scarce_o ever_o hearty_a serious_a convert_v but_o for_o man_n to_o be_v hire_v cheat_v fright_v into_o a_o change_n of_o sentiment_n be_v very_o odd_a indeed_o truth_n and_o faithfulness_n be_v very_o valuable_a thing_n and_o to_o i_o as_o worthy_a of_o a_o commendation_n in_o a_o conformist_n as_o in_o a_o nonconformist_a &_o vice_fw-la versa_fw-la nor_o shall_v i_o count_v thing_n better_a or_o worse_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o person_n in_o who_o i_o meet_v with_o they_o truth_n and_o goodness_n make_v man_n worthy_a but_o what_o can_v they_o derive_v from_o man_n god_n have_v show_v they_o to_o we_o in_o their_o proper_a evidence_n fit_a for_o discovery_n by_o impartial_a search_n and_o at_o our_o peril_n be_v it_o to_o reject_v they_o neither_o can_v any_o man_n confidence_n or_o passion_n change_v their_o nature_n or_o justify_v our_o refusal_n or_o mistake_v thereof_o no_o wonder_n then_o if_o this_o reverend_a author_n be_v so_o impartial_o free_a in_o both_o his_o narratives_n and_o character_n whilst_o the_o public_a interest_n be_v so_o much_o in_o his_o eye_n and_o lay_v so_o press_o on_o his_o heart_n 7._o whilst_o so_o devote_v to_o the_o public_a good_a of_o church_n and_o state_n he_o observe_v person_n inquire_v into_o thing_n study_a expedient_n consult_v god_n and_o man_n to_o know_v what_o be_v the_o likely_a way_n to_o heal_v the_o wound_n and_o settle_v the_o peace_n and_o welfare_n of_o church_n and_o state_n and_o how_o to_o do_v this_o regular_o and_o successful_o be_v the_o solicitous_a inquest_n and_o endeavour_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o if_o he_o do_v mistake_v his_o way_n it_o be_v not_o wilful_o but_o through_o infirmity_n 8._o but_o his_o defeat_a expectation_n and_o endeavour_n amid_o those_o many_o revolution_n in_o his_o time_n from_o which_o result_v hindrance_n neither_o few_o nor_o mean_v make_v he_o more_o strict_o to_o take_v the_o minute_n of_o proceed_n and_o event_n as_o they_o occur_v and_o so_o to_o make_v some_o fit_a remark_n thereon_o and_o have_v thus_o furnish_v himself_o with_o apt_a material_n and_o memoirs_fw-fr he_o at_o last_o digest_v all_o into_o this_o follow_a history_n which_o you_o have_v faithful_o from_o his_o own_o original_a abate_v some_o corrigenda_fw-la some_o little_a word_n supply_v here_o and_o there_o which_o currente_a calamo_fw-la be_v leave_v out_o some_o small_a chasm_n to_o be_v fill_v up_o whereto_o the_o current_a sense_n direct_v we_o and_o in_o some_o letter_n here_o insert_v not_o be_v by_o himself_o transcribe_v the_o word_n be_v something_o less_o legible_a than_o other_o they_o must_v be_v almost_o guess_v at_o though_o these_o be_v few_o and_o no_o way_n affect_v the_o sense_n considerable_o and_o some_o repetition_n through_o the_o author_n be_v own_o forgetfulness_n leave_v out_o but_o the_o history_n be_v entire_o he_o transcribe_v and_o publish_v as_o such_o from_o his_o own_o copy_n which_o i_o keep_v by_o i_o for_o my_o own_o vindication_n careful_o and_o as_o a_o memorial_n of_o himself_o with_o i_o second_o as_o to_o the_o history_n i._o of_o what_o concern_v and_o consequence_n the_o matter_n of_o it_o be_v the_o patient_a and_o diligent_a and_o judicious_a reader_n may_v soon_o discern_v weighty_a thing_n when_o full_o credible_o and_o impartial_o relate_v do_v ready_o commend_v themselves_o to_o the_o reader_n be_v acceptation_n and_o they_o do_v as_o ready_o meet_v therewith_o where_o ingenuity_n and_o candour_n do_v prevail_v what_o these_o thing_n be_v which_o the_o historian_n main_o insist_o upon_o may_v be_v discover_v quick_o by_o read_v over_o the_o content_n thereof_o whereto_o i_o will_v refer_v the_o reader_n first_o lest_o the_o first_o sheet_n or_o two_o through_o their_o graphical_a inaccuracy_n shall_v be_v offensive_a to_o he_o and_o so_o discourage_v his_o progressive_a read_n the_o history_n take_v its_o rise_n indeed_o à_fw-la leviusculis_fw-la from_o mean_a thing_n which_o see_v the_o author_n seem_v desirous_a and_o resolve_v to_o insert_v upon_o reason_n best_o know_v to_o himself_o indeed_o i_o dare_v not_o blot_v out_o reader_n and_o friend_n to_o the_o decease_a may_v be_v of_o various_a appetite_n and_o humour_n and_o different_a thing_n may_v have_v their_o different_a relish_v from_o various_o dispose_v palate_n why_o may_v not_o history_n take_v their_o start_n from_o small_a matter_n and_o so_o proceed_v to_o great_a as_o well_o as_o the_o material_a origination_n of_o the_o universe_n from_o its_o chaos_n and_o of_o humane_a body_n from_o their_o first_o dust_n or_o seed_n i_o do_v indeed_o profess_v my_o grief_n and_o shame_n that_o they_o escape_v i_o so_o inadvertent_o but_o i_o be_v then_o bereave_v of_o that_o composure_n in_o my_o thought_n through_o the_o tremendous_a hand_n of_o god_n upon_o i_o otherwise_o which_o i_o will_v not_o now_o relate_v for_o otherwise_o my_o caution_n have_v be_v great_a and_o so_o those_o sheet_n and_o other_o passage_n more_o correct_v i_o have_v neither_o time_n nor_o strength_n to_o attend_v the_o press_n so_o as_o to_o inspect_v the_o impression_n sheet_n
conversation_n among_o all_o protestant_n and_o upon_o avoid_v division_n among_o christ_n follower_n as_o that_o whatever_o obstruct_v these_o concern_v he_o be_v impatient_a of_o and_o warm_a against_o truth_n peace_n and_o love_n be_v he_o a_o votary_n to_o and_o martyr_n for_o and_o hereunto_o do_v he_o devote_v most_o of_o his_o life_n and_o labour_n dicam_fw-la quod_fw-la res_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v scandalous_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v division_n distance_n animosity_n and_o contention_n among_o christian_n protestant_n dissenter_n against_o each_o other_o and_o in_o the_o bowel_n of_o each_o party_n but_o much_o hereof_o arise_v from_o unhappy_a temper_n self-ignorance_n confidence_n and_o inobservance_n want_v of_o frequent_a patient_a and_o calm_a conference_n and_o impartial_a debate_n about_o thing_n controvert_v addictedness_n to_o self-interest_n and_o reputation_n with_o our_o respective_a party_n impatience_n of_o severe_a thought_n and_o study_n and_o of_o impartial_a consideration_n before_o we_o fix_v and_o pass_v our_o judgement_n take_v thing_n too_o much_o upon_o trust_n prejudice_n against_o those_o who_o sentiment_n be_v different_a from_o our_o own_o lay_v too_o great_a a_o weight_n upon_o eccentrical_a and_o mean_a thing_n pry_v too_o bold_o into_o and_o talk_v too_o confidently●_n about_o thing_n unrevealed_a or_o but_o dark_o hint_v to_o we_o in_o the_o sacred_a text_n and_o represent_v the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o christianity_n in_o our_o own_o artificial_a term_n and_o scheme_n and_o so_o confine_v the_o interest_n grace_n and_o heart_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n to_o our_o respective_a party_n as_o if_o we_o have_v forget_v or_o have_v never_o read_v rom._n 14._o 17_o 19_o act_n 10_o 34_o 35._o gal._n 6._o 14_o 16._o and_o eph._n 4._o 1_o 〈◊〉_d that_o person_n who_o thought_n heart_n and_o life_n shall_v meet_v i_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o reach_v of_o 2_o pet._n i._o i_o ii_o shall_v have_v my_o hearty_a love_n and_o service_n although_o he_o determine_v never_o to_o hear_v i_o preach_v or_o to_o communicate_v with_o i_o all_o his_o day_n through_o the_o impression_n of_o his_o education_n or_o acquaintance_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n i_o shall_v be_v loath_a that_o such_o a_o narrow_a thought_n shall_v be_v the_o principle_n poise_n and_o conduct_n of_o my_o church_n fellowship_n spirit_n or_o behaviour_n god_n have_v i_o doubt_v not_o his_o eminent_a and_o valuable_a servant_n in●all_v party_n and_o persuasion_n among_o christian_n a_o heavenly_a mind_n and_o life_n be_v all_o in_o all_o with_o i_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o god_n have_v many_o precious_a faithful_a one_o among_o the_o man_n call_v independent_n presbyterian_o ●●●nabap●ists_n prelatical_a and_o i_o humble_o judge_v it_o reasonable_a that_o 1._o the_o miscarriage_n of_o former_a party_n be_v not_o impute_v to_o succeed_a party_n who_o own_v not_o nor_o abet_v their_o principle_n as_o productive_a of_o such_o practical_a enormity_n 2._o that_o the_o miscarriage_n of_o some_o particular_a person_n be_v not_o charge_v on_o the_o rest_n until_o they_o profess_v or_o manifest_v their_o approbation_n of_o they_o 3._o that_o what_o be_v repent_v of_o and_o pardon_v be_v not_o so_o receive_v as_o to_o foment_n division_n and_o recrimination_n 4._o that_o my_o trust_n from_o mr._n baxter_n and_o faithfulness_n to_o he_o and_o to_o posterity_n be_v not_o construe_v as_o the_o result_n of_o any_o spleen_n in_o i_o against_o any_o person_n or_o party_n mention_v in_o this_o follow_a history_n 5._o and_o that_o we_o all_o value_n that_o in_o one_o another_o which_o god_n think_v lovely_a where_o he_o form_n and_o find_v it_o and_o 6._o o_o utinam_fw-la that_o we_o form_v no_o other_o test_n and_o canon_n of_o christian_a orthodoxy_n and_o save_v soundness_n and_o christian_a fellowship_n than_o what_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n give_v we_o as_o explicatory_a of_o the_o christian_a baptismal_a creed_n and_o covenant_n as_o influence_v we_o into_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o heavenly_a hope_n and_o joy_n i_o think_v once_o to_o have_v give_v the_o world_n a_o faithful_a abstract_n of_o mr_n baxter_n doctrine_n or_o judgement_n contain_v the_o sense_n of_o what_o he_o hold_v about_o justification_n faith_n work_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o lay_v aside_o his_o term_n of_o art_n that_o hereby_o the_o reader_n may_v discern_v the_o consonancy_n of_o it_o to_o the_o sacred_a text_n and_o to_o the_o doctrinal_a confession_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n his_o consistence_n with_o himself_o and_o his_o near_a approach_n in_o judgement_n to_o those_o from_o who_o he_o seem_v to_o differ_v much_o than_o the_o prejudice_v adversary_n be_v aware_a of_o but_o this_o must_v be_v a_o work_n of_o time_n if_o not_o a_o enterprise_n too_o great_a for_o i_o as_o i_o just_o fear_v it_o be_v but_o i_o will_v do_v by_o he_o as_o i_o will_v do_v by_o other_o and_o have_v they_o do_v by_o i_o viz._n give_v he_o his_o own_a explication_n of_o the_o baptismal_a creed_n and_o covenant_n as_o a_o fit_a test_n to_o try_v his_o judgement_n by_o and_o if_o his_o doctrine_n in_o his_o other_o treatise_n consist_v herewith_o other_o perhaps_o will_v see_v more_o cause_n to_o think_v he_o orthodox_n in_o the_o most_o weighty_a article_n and_o less_o to_o be_v suspect_v notwithstanding_o his_o different_a modes_n of_o speech_n the_o thing_n profess_o believe_v by_o he_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o his_o christian_a concord_n be_v that_o there_o be_v one_o only_a god_n the_o father_n infinite_a in_o be_v wisdom_n goodness_n and_o power_n the_o maker_n preserver_n and_o disposer_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o the_o most_o just_a and_o merciful_a lord_n of_o all._n that_o mankind_n be_v fall_v by_o sin_n from_o god_n and_o happiness_n under_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n the_o curse_n of_o his_o law_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a son_n to_o be_v their_o redeemer_n who_o be_v god_n and_o one_o with_o the_o father_n do_v take_v to_o he_o our_o nature_n and_o become_v man_n be_v conceive_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o bear_v of_o she_o and_o name_v jesus_n christ_n and_o have_v live_v on_o earth_n without_o sin_n and_o wrought_v many_o miracle_n for_o a_o witness_n of_o his_o truth_n he_o give_v up_o himself_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o a_o ransom_n for_o 〈◊〉_d in_o suffer_v death_n on_o the_o cross_n and_o be_v bury_v he_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o in_o glory_n with_o the_o father_n and_o have_v ordain_v that_o all_o that_o true_o repent_v and_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o love_v he_o above_o all_o thing_n and_o sincere_o obey_v he_o and_o that_o to_o the_o death_n shall_v be_v save_v and_o they_o that_o will_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v and_o commend_v his_o minister_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o world_n he_o will_v come_v again_o and_o raise_v the_o body_n of_o all_o man_n from_o death_n and_o will_v set_v all_o the_o world_n before_o he_o to_o be_v judge_v according_a to_o what_o they_o have_v do_v in_o the_o body_n and_o he_o will_v adjudge_v the_o righteous_a to_o life_n everlasting_a and_o the_o rest_n to_o everlasting_a punishment_n which_o shall_v be_v execute_v according_o that_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v ●●nt_v from_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n to_o inspire_v and_o guide_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n that_o they_o may_v full_o reveal_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o multitude_n of_o evident_a miracle_n and_o wonderful_a gift_n to_o be_v the_o great_a witness_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n and_o also_o to_o dwell_v and_o work_v in_o all_o that_o be_v draw_v to_o believe_v that_o be_v first_o join_v to_o christ_n their_o head_n and_o into_o one_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n and_o so_o pardon_v and_o make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n they_o may_v be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n sanctify_v to_o christ_n and_o may_v mortify_v the_o fesh_n and_o overcome_v the_o world_n and_o the_o devil_n and_o be_v zealous_a of_o good_a work_n may_v serve_v god_n in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o may_v live_v in_o the_o special_a love_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o in_o hope_n of_o christ_n come_v and_o of_o everlasting_a life_n in_o the_o belief_n hereof_o the_o thing_n consent_v to_o be_v as_o follow_v that_o he_o hearty_o take_v this_o one_o god_n for_o his_o only_a god_n and_o his_o chief_a good_a and_o this_o jesus_n christ_n for_o his_o only_a lord_n redeemer_n and_o saviour_n and_o this_o holy_a ghost_n for_o his_o sanctifier_n and_o the_o doctrine_n by_o he_o reveal_v and_o seal_v by_o his_o miracle_n and_o now_o contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o take_v for_o the_o law_n of_o god_n
soldier_n say_v it_o be_v my_o commission_n and_o the_o high_a court_n of_o parliament_n say_v it_o be_v the_o law_n declare_v in_o a_o court_n of_o justice_n a_o parliament_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o proper_a judge_n as_o in_o controversy_n of_o physic_n who_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v before_o the_o college_n of_o physician_n or_o in_o controversy_n of_o religion_n who_o before_o a_o general_n council_n if_o the_o house_n of_o york_n and_o lancaster●ight_n ●ight_z for_o the_o crown_n and_o both_o command_v the_o subject_n arms._n the_o poor_a peasant_n be_v not_o able_a to_o judge_v of_o their_o title_n and_o if_o a_o parliament_n shall_v not_o judge_v for_o they_o who_o shall_v these_o be_v the_o reason_n which_o cause_v man_n to_o adhere_v to_o the_o parliament_n in_o this_o war._n §_o 55._o for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o free_o confess_v that_o i_o be_v not_o judicious_a enough_o in_o politic_n and_o law_n to_o decide_v this_o controversy_n which_o so_o many_o lawyer_n and_o wise_a man_n differ_v in_o and_o i_o free_o confess_v that_o be_v astonish_v at_o the_o irish_a massacre_n and_o persuade_v full_o both_o of_o the_o parliament_n good_a endeavour_n for_o reformation_n and_o of_o their_o real_a danger_n my_o judgement_n of_o the_o main_a cause_n much_o sway_v my_o judgement_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o war_n and_o the_o argument_n à_fw-fr fine_a &_o à_fw-la natureâ_fw-la &_o necessitate_v which_o common_a wit_n be_v capable_a of_o discern_v do_v too_o far_o incline_v my_o judgement_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o war_n before_o i_o well_o understand_v the_o argument_n from_o our_o particular_a law_n and_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o party_n that_o side_v for_o each_o cause_n in_o the_o country_n do_v great_o work_v with_o i_o and_o more_o than_o it_o shall_v have_v do_v and_o i_o very_o think_v that_o if_o that_o which_o a_o judge_n in_o court_n say_v sentential_o be_v law_n must_v go_v for_o law_n to_o the_o subject_a as_o to_o the_o decision_n of_o that_o cause_n though_o the_o king_n send_v his_o broad_a seal_n against_o it_o then_o that_o which_o the_o parliament_n say_v be_v law_n be_v law_n to_o the_o subject_n about_o the_o danger_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n whatever_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o and_o that_o if_o the_o king_n broad-seal_n can_v prevail_v against_o the_o judge_n much_o less_o against_o their_o judgement_n i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o both_o party_n be_v to_o blame_v as_o it_o common_o fall_v out_o in_o most_o war_n and_o contention_n and_o i_o will_v not_o be_v he_o that_o shall_v justify_v either_o of_o they_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o headiness_n and_o rashness_n of_o the_o young_a unexperienced_a sort_n of_o religious_a people_n make_v many_o parliament_n man_n and_o minister_n overgo_v themselves_o to_o keep_v pace_n with_o those_o hot_a spur_n no_o doubt_n but_o much_o indiscretion_n appear_v and_o worse_o than_o indiscretion_n in_o the_o tumultuous_a petitioner_n and_o much_o sin_n be_v commit_v in_o the_o dishonour_n of_o the_o king_n and_o provocation_n of_o he_o and_o in_o the_o uncivil_a language_n against_o the_o bishop_n and_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n but_o these_o thing_n come_v principal_o from_o the_o sectarian_n separate_v spirit_n which_o blow_v the_o coal_n among_o foolish_a apprentice_n and_o as_o the_o sectary_n increase_v so_o do_v this_o insolence_n increase_v i_o have_v myself_o be_v in_o london_n when_o they_o have_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n stand_v at_o the_o church_n door_n while_o the_o common_a prayer_n be_v read_v say_v we_o must_v stay_v till_o he_o be_v out_o of_o his_o pottage_n and_o such_o unchristian_a scorn_n and_o jest_n do_v please_v young_a inconsiderate_a wit_n that_o know_v not_o what_o spirit_n they_o be_v of_o nor_o whither_o such_o unwarrantate_n thing_n do_v tend_v learned_a mr._n john_n ball_n though_o a_o nonconformist_n discern_v the_o stir_n of_o this_o insolent_a sectarian_n spirit_n betimes_o and_o fall_v a_o write_n against_o it_o even_o then_o when_o some_o be_v cry_v out_o of_o persecution_n and_o other_o be_v tender_a of_o such_o little_a difference_n one_o or_o two_o in_o the_o house_n and_o five_o or_o six_o minister_n that_o come_v from_o holland_n and_o a_o few_o that_o be_v scatter_v in_o the_o city_n which_o be_v the_o brownist_n relic_n do_v drive_v on_o other_o according_a to_o their_o own_o divide_v principle_n and_o sow_v the_o seed_n which_o afterward_o spread_v over_o all_o the_o land_n though_o then_o there_o be_v very_o few_o of_o they_o in_o the_o country_n even_o next_o to_o none_o as_o bishop_n hall_n speak_v against_o the_o justify_n of_o the_o bishop_n so_o do_v i_o against_o justify_v the_o parliament_n minister_n or_o city_n i_o believe_v many_o unjustifiable_a thing_n be_v do_v but_o i_o think_v that_o few_o man_n among_o they_o all_o be_v the_o doer_n or_o instigater_n of_o it_o but_o i_o than_o think_v that_o whosoever_o be_v faulty_a the_o people_n liberty_n and_o safety_n can_v not_o be_v forfeit_v and_o i_o think_v that_o all_o the_o subject_n be_v not_o guilty_a of_o all_o the_o fault_n of_o king_n or_o parliament_n when_o they_o defend_v they_o yea_o that_o if_o both_o their_o cause_n have_v be_v bad_a as_o against_o each_o other_o yet_o that_o the_o subject_n shall_v adhere_v to_o that_o party_n which_o most_o secure_v the_o welfare_n of_o the_o nation_n and_o may_v defend_v the_o land_n under_o their_o conduct_n without_o own_v all_o their_o cause_n and_o herein_o i_o confess_v i_o be_v then_o so_o zealous_a that_o i_o think_v it_o a_o great_a sin_n for_o man_n that_o be_v able_a to_o defend_v their_o country_n to_o be_v neuter_n and_o i_o have_v be_v tempt_v since_o to_o think_v that_o i_o be_v a_o more_o competent_a judge_n upon_o the_o place_n when_o all_o thing_n be_v before_o our_o eye_n than_o i_o be_o in_o the_o review_n of_o those_o day_n and_o action_n so_o many_o year_n after_o when_o distance_n disadvantage_v the_o apprehension_n a_o writer_n against_o cromwel_n decimation_n recant_v his_o great_a adherence_n to_o the_o parliament_n in_o that_o war_n yet_o so_o abhor_v neutrality_n that_o he_o liken_v he_o rather_o to_o a_o dog_n than_o a_o man_n that_o can_v stand_v by_o when_o his_o country_n be_v in_o such_o a_o case_n but_o i_o confess_v for_o my_o part_n i_o have_v not_o such_o censorious_a thought_n of_o those_o that_o then_o be_v neuter_n as_o former_o i_o have_v have_v for_o he_o that_o either_o think_v both_o side_n raise_v a_o unlawful_a war_n or_o that_o can_v not_o tell_v which_o if_o either_o be_v in_o the_o right_n may_v well_o be_v excuse_v if_o he_o defend_v neither_o i_o be_v always_o satisfy_v 1._o that_o the_o divider_n of_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n be_v the_o traitor_n whoever_o they_o be_v and_o that_o the_o division_n tend_v to_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o government_n 2._o and_o that_o the_o authority_n and_o person_n of_o the_o king_n be_v inviolable_a out_o of_o the_o reach_n of_o just_a accusation_n judgement_n or_o execution_n by_o law_n as_o have_v no_o superior_a and_o so_o no_o judge_n 3._o i_o favour_v the_o parliament_n cause_v as_o they_o profess_v 1._o to_o bring_v delinquent_n to_o a_o legal_a trial_n 2._o and_o to_o preserve_v the_o person_n and_o government_n of_o the_o king_n by_o a_o conjunction_n with_o his_o parliament_n but_o matter_n that_o war_n and_o blood_n be_v any_o way_n concern_v in_o be_v so_o great_a and_o tender_o to_o be_v handle_v that_o i_o profess_v to_o the_o world_n that_o i_o dare_v not_o i_o will_v not_o justify_v any_o thing_n that_o other_o or_o i_o myself_o have_v do_v of_o any_o such_o consequence_n but_o though_o i_o never_o hurt_v the_o person_n of_o any_o man_n yet_o i_o resolve_v to_o pray_v daily_o and_o earnest_o to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v reveal_v to_o i_o whatever_o i_o have_v do_v amiss_o and_o not_o suffer_v i_o through_o ignorance_n to_o be_v impenitent_a and_o will_v forgive_v i_o both_o my_o know_a and_o unknown_a sin_n and_o cleanse_v this_o land_n from_o the_o gild_n of_o blood_n §_o 56._o have_v insert_v this_o much_o of_o the_o case_n of_o history_n of_o those_o time_n i_o now_o proceed_v to_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o passage_n of_o my_o own_o life_n begin_v where_o i_o leave_v when_o i_o be_v at_o kidderminster_n the_o parliament_n make_v a_o order_n for_o all_o the_o people_n to_o take_v a_o protestation_n to_o defend_v the_o king_n person_n honour_n and_o authority_n the_o power_n and_o privilege_n of_o parliament_n the_o liberty_n of_o the_o subject_a and_o the_o protestant_a religion_n against_o the_o common_a enemy_n mean_v the_o papist_n the_o irish_a massacre_n and_o threaten_n occasion_v this_o protestation_n i_o obey_v they_o in_o join_v with_o the_o magistrate_n in_o offer_v
another_o kind_n of_o militia_n i_o have_v than_o they_o i_o find_v that_o many_o honest_a man_n of_o weak_a judgement_n and_o little_a acquaintance_n with_o such_o matter_n have_v be_v seduce_v into_o a_o dispute_a vein_n and_o make_v it_o too_o much_o of_o their_o religion_n to_o talk_v for_o this_o opinion_n and_o for_o that_o sometime_o for_o state_n democracy_n and_o sometime_o for_o church_n democracy_n sometime_o against_o form_n of_o prayer_n and_o sometime_o against_o infant_n baptism_n which_o yet_o some_o of_o they_o do_v maintain_v sometime_o against_o set-time_n of_o prayer_n and_o against_o the_o type_v of_o ourselves_o to_o any_o duty_n before_o the_o spirit_n move_v we_o and_o sometime_o about_o freegrace_n and_o freewill_n and_o all_o the_o point_n of_o antinomianism_n and_o arminianism_n so_o that_o i_o be_v almost_o always_o when_o i_o have_v opportunity_n dispute_v with_o one_o or_o other_o of_o they_o sometime_o for_o our_o civil_a government_n and_o sometime_o for_o church_n order_n and_o government_n sometime_o for_o infant_n baptism_n and_o oft_o against_o antinomianism_n and_o the_o contrary_a extreme_a but_o their_o most_o frequent_a and_o vehement_a dispute_n be_v for_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n as_o they_o call_v it_o that_o be_v that_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v to_o determine_v of_o any_o thing_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n by_o constraint_n or_o restraint_n but_o every_o man_n may_v not_o only_o hold_v but_o preach_v and_o do_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n what_o he_o please_v that_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v but_o with_o civil_a thing_n to_o keep_v the_o peace_n and_o protect_v the_o church_n liberty_n etc._n etc._n i_o find_v that_o one_o half_a almost_o of_o the_o religious_a party_n among_o they_o be_v such_o as_o be_v either_o orthodox_n or_o but_o very_o light_o touch_v with_o their_o mistake_n and_o almost_o another_o half_n be_v honest_a man_n that_o step_v further_o into_o the_o contend_a way_n than_o they_o can_v well_o get_v out_o again_o but_o with_o competent_a help_n may_v be_v recover_v but_o a_o few_o fiery_a self-conceited_a man_n among_o they_o kindle_v the_o rest_n and_o make_v all_o the_o noise_n and_o bustle_v and_o carry_v about_o the_o army_n as_o they_o please_v for_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o common_a soldier_n especial_o of_o the_o foot_n be_v ignorant_a man_n of_o little_a religion_n abundance_n of_o they_o such_o as_o have_v be_v take_v prisoner_n or_o turn_v out_o of_o garrison_n under_o the_o king_n and_o have_v be_v soldier_n in_o his_o army_n and_o these_o will_v do_v any_o thing_n to_o please_v their_o officer_n and_o be_v ready_a instrument_n for_o the_o seducer_n especial_o in_o their_o great_a work_n which_o be_v to_o cry_v down_o the_o covenant_n to_o vilify_v all_o parish_n minister_n but_o especial_o the_o scots_a and_o presbyterian_o for_o the_o most_o of_o the_o soldier_n that_o i_o speak_v with_o never_o take_v the_o covenant_n because_o it_o tie_v they_o to_o defend_v the_o king_n person_n and_o to_o extirpate_v heresy_n and_o schism_n because_o i_o perceive_v that_o it_o be_v a_o few_o man_n that_o bear_v the_o bell_n that_o do_v all_o the_o hurt_n among_o they_o i_o acquaint_v myself_o with_o those_o man_n and_o will_v be_v oft_o dispute_v with_o they_o in_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o rest_n and_o i_o find_v that_o they_o be_v man_n that_o have_v be_v in_o london_n hatch_v up_o among_o the_o old_a separatist_n and_o have_v make_v it_o all_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o study_n and_o religion_n to_o rail_v against_o minister_n and_o parish_n church_n and_o presbyterian_o and_o have_v little_a other_o knowledge_n nor_o little_a discourse_n of_o any_o thing_n about_o the_o heart_n or_o heaven_n but_o be_v fierce_a with_o pride_n and_o selfconceitedness_a and_o have_v get_v a_o very_a great_a conquest_n over_o their_o charity_n both_o to_o the_o episcopal_a and_o presbyterian_o whereas_o many_o of_o those_o honest_a soldier_n which_o be_v taint_v but_o with_o some_o doubt_n about_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n or_o independency_n be_v man_n that_o will_v discourse_n of_o the_o point_n of_o sanctification_n and_o christian_a experience_n very_o savoury_o but_o we_o so_o far_o prevail_v in_o open_v the_o folly_n of_o these_o reviler_n and_o self-conceited_a man_n as_o that_o some_o of_o they_o become_v the_o laughingstock_n of_o the_o soldier_n before_o i_o leave_v they_o and_o when_o they_o preach_v for_o great_a preacher_n they_o be_v their_o weakness_n expose_v they_o to_o contempt_n a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o mischief_n they_o do_v among_o the_o soldier_n be_v by_o pamphlet_n which_o they_o abundant_o disperse_v such_o as_o r._n overton_n martin_n mar-priest_n and_o more_o of_o he_o and_o some_o of_o i._o lilburn_n who_o be_v one_o of_o they_o and_o divers_a against_o the_o king_n and_o against_o the_o ministry_n and_o for_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n etc._n etc._n and_o soldier_n be_v usual_o disperse_v in_o their_o quarter_n they_o have_v such_o book_n to_o read_v when_o they_o have_v none_o to_o contradict_v they_o but_o there_o be_v yet_o a_o more_o dangerous_a party_n than_o all_o these_o among_o they_o only_o in_o major_a bethel_n troop_n of_o our_o regiment_n who_o take_v the_o direct_a jesuitical_a way_n they_o first_o most_o vehement_o declaim_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o election_n and_o for_o the_o power_n of_o freewill_n and_o all_o other_o point_n which_o be_v controvert_v between_o the_o jesuit_n and_o dominican_n the_o arminian_o and_o calvinist_n then_o they_o as_o fierce_o cry_v down_o our_o present_a translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o debase_v their_o authority_n though_o they_o do_v not_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v divine_a and_o they_o cry_v down_o all_o our_o ministry_n episcopal_n presbyterian_a and_o independent_a and_o all_o our_o church_n and_o they_o vilify_v almost_o all_o our_o ordinary_a worship_n especial_o sing_v of_o psalm_n and_o constant_a family_n worship_n they_o allow_v of_o no_o argument_n from_o scripture_n but_o what_o be_v bring_v in_o its_o express_a word_n they_o be_v vehement_a against_o both_o the_o king_n and_o all_o government_n but_o popular_a and_o against_o magistrate_n meddle_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o all_o their_o dispute_v be_v with_o as_o much_o fierceness_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v ready_a to_o draw_v their_o sword_n upon_o those_o against_o who_o they_o dispute_v they_o trust_v more_o to_o policy_n scorn_v and_o power_n than_o to_o argument_n they_o will_v bitter_o scorn_v i_o among_o their_o hearer_n to_o prejudice_v they_o before_o they_o enter_v into_o dispute_n they_o avoid_v i_o as_o much_o as_o possible_a but_o when_o we_o do_v come_v to_o it_o they_o drown_v all_o reason_n in_o fierceness_n and_o vehemency_n and_o multitude_n of_o word_n they_o great_o strive_v for_o place_n of_o command_n and_o when_o any_o place_n be_v due_a by_o order_n to_o another_o that_o be_v not_o of_o their_o mind_n they_o will_v be_v sure_a to_o work_v he_o out_o and_o be_v ready_a to_o mutiny_v if_o they_o have_v not_o their_o will_n i_o think_v they_o be_v principled_a by_o the_o jesuit_n and_o act_v all_o for_o their_o interest_n and_o in_o their_o way_n but_o the_o secret_a spring_n be_v out_o of_o sight_n these_o be_v the_o same_o man_n that_o afterward_o be_v call_v leveller_n and_o rise_v up_o against_o cromwell_n and_o be_v surprise_v at_o burford_n have_v deceive_v and_o draw_v to_o they_o many_o more_o and_o thompson_n the_o general_n of_o the_o leveller_n that_o be_v slay_v then_o be_v no_o great_a a_o man_n than_o one_o of_o the_o corporal_n of_o this_o troop_n the_o cornet_n and_o other_o be_v much_o worse_a than_o he_o and_o thus_o i_o have_v give_v you_o a_o taste_n of_o my_o employment_n in_o the_o army_n §_o 78._o as_o soon_o as_o i_o come_v to_o the_o army_n they_o march_v speedy_o down_o into_o the_o west_n because_o the_o king_n have_v no_o army_n leave_v but_o the_o lord_n goring_n there_o and_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o fugitive_n of_o naseby-fight_a to_o come_v thither_o to_o strengthen_v they_o they_o come_v quick_o down_o to_o somerton_n when_o goring_n be_v at_o langport_n which_o lie_v upon_o the_o river_n massey_n be_v send_v to_o keep_v he_o in_o on_o the_o far_a side_n while_o fairfax_n attend_v he_o on_o this_o side_n with_o his_o army_n one_o day_n they_o face_v each_o other_o and_o do_v nothing_o the_o next_o day_n they_o come_v to_o their_o ground_n again_o betwixt_o the_o two_o army_n be_v a_o narrow_a lane_n which_o go_v between_o some_o meadow_n in_o a_o bottom_n and_o a_o small_a brook_n cross_v the_o lane_n with_o a_o narrow_a bridge_n goring_n plant_v two_o or_o three_o small_a piece_n at_o the_o head_n of_o the_o lane_n to_o keep_v the_o passage_n and_o there_o place_v his_o best_a horse_n so_o
may_v read_v they_o after_o this_o i_o receive_v from_o sir_n ralph_n clare_n these_o ensue_a paper_n as_o from_o some_o courtier_n which_o be_v of_o the_o same_o strain_n with_o dr._n gunning_n which_o with_o my_o brief_a answer_n i_o adjoin_v sir_n the_o influence_n and_o power_n you_o have_v in_o the_o present_a pastor_n of_o your_o church_n who_o be_v much_o fame_v abroad_o and_o have_v in_o a_o reverend_a esteem_n as_o well_o for_o piety_n of_o life_n as_o for_o his_o learning_n moderation_n and_o desire_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n give_v encouragement_n to_o your_o old_a acquaintance_n and_o associate_v in_o that_o one-glorious_a court_n of_o england_n to_o desire_v the_o favour_n that_o this_o enclose_a paper_n may_v be_v present_v to_o his_o christian_a view_n and_o consideration_n presume_v so_o great_a be_v his_o charity_n that_o he_o will_v not_o leave_v any_o wound_a soul_n unhealed_a wherein_o he_o be_v able_a to_o bestow_v his_o balm_n in_o this_o he_o extend_v not_o his_o charity_n alone_o as_o to_o a_o single_a person_n but_o in_o i_o there_o be_v many_o more_o of_o your_o friend_n include_v who_o will_v have_v appear_v in_o person_n or_o meet_v in_o conference_n be_v be_v not_o our_o mansion_n be_v at_o too_o great_a a_o distance_n and_o the_o malignity_n and_o jealousy_n of_o time_n challenge_v retirement_n rather_o than_o assembly_n it_o be_v not_o civil_a in_o we_o to_o chalk_v the_o method_n of_o answer_v the_o query_n yet_o for_o easement_n sake_n and_o brevity_n it_o will_v be_v satisfactory_a his_o free_a concession_n of_o any_o proposal_n in_o the_o affirmative_a to_o be_v true_a without_o any_o enlargement_n of_o reason_n and_o for_o those_o query_n which_o may_n and_o must_v admit_v division_n distinction_n and_o discourse_n on_o the_o case_n let_v the_o reverend_a gentleman_n use_v his_o own_o form_n judgement_n and_o discretion_n as_o believe_v he_o will_v proceed_v with_o such_o candour_n and_o impartiality_n as_o become_v a_o man_n of_o his_o call_v and_o eminency_n wave_v all_o by-interest_n and_o relation_n to_o any_o party_n or_o faction_n either_o regnant_a or_o eclipse_v which_o act_n will_v deserve_o heighten_v the_o high_a esteem_n he_o be_v value_v at_o and_o yourself_o by_o this_o honour_n do_v engage_v i_o and_o many_o more_o of_o your_o old_a friend_n in_o i_o to_o subscribe_v ourselves_o your_o servant_n theophilus_n church_n a_o feign_a name_n april_n 20._o 1655._o certain_a query_n and_o scruple_n of_o conscience_n offer_v to_o some_o learned_a divine_n for_o resolution_n and_o satisfaction_n 1._o whether_o may_v a_o christian_a magistrate_n tolerate_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n in_o religion_n and_o church_n discipline_n without_o scandal_n 2._o whether_o may_v and_o aught_o a_o tender_a conscience_n exercise_v and_o use_v his_o liberty_n and_o freedom_n without_o violence_n enforce_v by_o superior_n 3._o whether_o in_o matter_n of_o government_n ecclesiastical_a depend_v only_o of_o fact_n the_o general_a and_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n from_o age_n to_o age_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a evidence_n and_o warrant_n of_o the_o right_n truth_n and_o certainty_n of_o the_o thing_n 4._o whether_o the_o vocation_n of_o bishop_n be_v a_o order_n lawful_a in_o itself_o 5._o whether_o the_o regiment_n ecclesiastical_a by_o bishop_n have_v not_o continue_v throughout_o the_o christian_a church_n ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n until_o calvin_n day_n no_o church_n orthodox_n dissent_v 6._o whether_o be_v there_o ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n day_n so_o much_o as_o one_o national_a church_n govern_v by_o a_o presbytery_n without_o a_o bishop_n until_o calvin_n day_n if_o so_o where_o be_v the_o original_a in_o what_o place_n by_o what_o person_n of_o what_o continuance_n and_o how_o be_v it_o lose_v or_o change_v into_o episcopacy_n and_o upon_o what_o ground_n or_o motive_n 7._o whether_o the_o present_a ministry_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o it_o now_o separate_v from_o their_o lawful_a superior_n or_o bishop_n be_v not_o schismatical_a 8._o whether_o all_o these_o minister_n that_o have_v take_v the_o oath_n of_o canonical_a obedience_n to_o their_o bishop_n and_o have_v backsliden_fw-mi and_z submit_v to_o those_o power_n that_o violent_o deprive_v the_o say_v bishop_n of_o their_o legal_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n by_o yield_v a_o voluntary_a obedience_n to_o their_o ordinance_n be_v not_o under_o a_o high_a censure_n of_o perjury_n and_o schism_n 9_o whether_o those_o minister_n now_o pretend_v to_o be_v make_v and_o ordain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n only_o by_o their_o fellow_n minister_n without_o a_o bishop_n be_v true_a minister_n or_o no_o or_o else_o mere_a lay_v person_n and_o bold_a usurper_n of_o the_o sacred_a function_n and_o order_n like_o corah_n and_o his_o complice_n 10._o whether_o all_o those_o minister_n which_o be_v now_o in_o actual_a possession_n of_o the_o late_a incumbent_n parsonage_n and_o cure_n of_o soul_n and_o deprive_v for_o their_o only_a adhere_n and_o assist_v their_o late_a lawful_a prince_n and_o their_o governor_n and_o also_o their_o bishop_n to_o who_o they_o owe_v all_o canonical_a obedience_n without_o and_o beside_o any_o legal_a induction_n or_o admission_n may_v not_o be_v repute_v as_o intruder_n and_o false_a shepherd_n 11._o whether_o it_o have_v not_o be_v a_o excellent_a part_n of_o christian_a perfection_n rather_o to_o endure_v passive_o lose_v of_o liberty_n estate_n and_o even_o of_o life_n itself_o for_o the_o maintenance_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o just_a and_o legal_a right_n invest_v in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v superintendent_n pastor_n and_o the_o liturgy_n and_o service_n of_o the_o church_n than_o carnal_o for_o self-interest_n and_o end_n to_o comply_v and_o submit_v even_o against_o their_o know_a conscience_n to_o a_o violent_a and_o mere_a prevail_a power_n and_o force_v in_o the_o abolish_n of_o episcopal_a power_n and_o the_o daily_a prayer_n and_o service_n use_v in_o the_o church_n 12._o whether_o all_o such_o person_n be_v not_o guilty_a of_o schism_n and_o of_o scandal_n give_v which_o communicate_v and_o be_v present_a in_o such_o minister_n congregation_n and_o assembly_n whether_o in_o church_n or_o in_o private_a meeting_n to_o hear_v their_o prayer_n or_o sermon_n or_o receive_v their_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o now_o present_a mode_n and_o form_n more_o especial_o in_o the_o participation_n with_o they_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n or_o how_o far_o may_v a_o good_a christian_a communicate_v with_o such_o without_o just_a scandal_n give_v or_o take_v 13._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a and_o just_a for_o any_o orthodox_n minister_n or_o episcoparian_n to_o accept_v of_o any_o benefice_n with_o cure_n of_o soul_n as_o the_o state_n of_o the_o english_a church_n now_o stand_v visible_a and_o roll_a without_o guilt_n of_o schism_n by_o compliance_n to_o their_o form_n 14._o whether_o as_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o england_n be_v the_o minister_n thereof_o may_v not_o legal_o and_o so_o justifiable_o exercise_n and_o use_v against_o the_o late_a liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o statute_n law_n prohibit_v the_o same_o and_o whether_o those_o that_o continue_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o late_a directory_n be_v not_o perturber_n of_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o since_o the_o limitation_n of_o trial_n by_o a_o pretend_a legality_n and_o command_n for_o its_o observance_n be_v expire_v and_o not_o reconfirm_v 15._o whether_o the_o old_a jewish_a church_n have_v not_o set_v form_n of_o prayer_n whether_o st._n john_n the_o raptist_n our_o saviour_n praecursor_n and_o our_o bless_a saviour_n himself_o teach_v not_o their_o disciple_n set_v form_n of_o prayer_n and_o whether_o the_o christian_a church_n especial_o since_o the_o time_n of_o peace_n from_o the_o violence_n of_o heathenish_a persecution_n have_v not_o nor_o general_o use_v set_v form_n of_o prayer_n and_o whether_o the_o minister_n now_o ex_fw-la tempore_fw-la prayer_n in_o the_o church_n be_v not_o as_o well_o a_o set_a form_n of_o prayer_n to_o the_o auditor_n who_o spirit_n be_v therein_o bound_v as_o any_o set_a form_n of_o prayer_n use_v in_o the_o church_n 16._o whether_o may_v a_o christian_a without_o scandal_n give_v appear_v to_o be_v a_o godfather_n or_o godmother_n to_o a_o child_n in_o these_o new_a assembly_n where_o the_o minister_n use_v his_o own_o dictate_v and_o prayer_n and_o not_o of_o the_o ancient_a liturgy_n except_o the_o word_n of_o baptism_n i_o baptise_v thou_o a._n b._n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n 17._o whether_o any_o supreme_a earthly_a power_n or_o power_n spiritual_a or_o temporal_a joint_a or_o separate_a can_v alienate_v and_o convert_v to_o secular_a use_n or_o employment_n any_o house_n land_n good_n or_o thing_n once_o devote_v offer_v and_o dedicate_v to_o god_n and_o his_o church_n
observe_v or_o lay_v to_o heart_n the_o strict_a command_n of_o the_o lord_n herein_o as_o if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o such_o passage_n in_o our_o bibles_n but_o bless_a be_v the_o lord_n that_o begin_v mighty_o to_o awaken_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o observe_v the_o truth_n which_o they_o overlook_v and_o at_o last_o to_o lay_v to_o heart_n the_o duty_n so_o much_o neglect_v we_o now_o hear_v from_o many_o country_n of_o this_o nation_n the_o voice_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o peace_n our_o brethren_n begin_v to_o get_v together_o and_o consult_v of_o the_o mean_n of_o repair_v our_o breach_n and_o in_o many_o place_n be_v associate_v and_o though_o the_o work_v be_v but_o beginning_n and_o mighty_o resist_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o holiness_n and_o peace_n yet_o be_v we_o in_o great_a hope_n that_o these_o beginning_n do_v promise_v more_o and_o that_o god_n have_v not_o awaken_v we_o to_o this_o work_n in_o vain_a and_o now_o by_o the_o tiding_n of_o your_o concord_n we_o have_v receive_v a_o increase_n of_o these_o our_o hope_n and_o consolation_n go_v on_o dear_a brethren_n as_o one_o in_o the_o centre_n of_o unity_n and_o prevail_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o great_a reconciler_n this_o be_v the_o way_n that_o will_v prevail_v at_o last_o and_o however_o it_o be_v think_v of_o by_o other_o will_n certain_o be_v comfortable_a to_o ourselves_o in_o the_o review_n when_o divide_v way_n will_v be_v all_o disgrace_v and_o look_v with_o another_o face_n than_o now_o they_o do_v he_o that_o be_v for_o vanity_n and_o love_n be_v like_a to_o have_v his_o approbation_n who_o be_v one_o and_o who_o be_v love_n our_o heart_n be_v with_o you_o and_o our_o prayer_n shall_v be_v for_o you_o that_o you_o may_v abundant_o reap_v the_o fruit_n of_o concord_n in_o the_o conviction_n of_o gainsayers_a and_o the_o far_a confirmation_n and_o edification_n of_o your_o own_o your_o motion_n for_o a_o correspondency_n we_o glad_o entertain_v and_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o the_o assistance_n of_o your_o advice_n and_o prayer_n and_o willing_o to_o that_o end_n communicate_v our_o affair_n we_o be_v now_o upon_o a_o joint_a agreement_n to_o bring_v all_o the_o ancient_a person_n in_o our_o parish_n who_o will_v not_o do_v it_o in_o the_o congregation_n to_o our_o house_n on_o certain_a day_n every_o week_n by_o turn_n to_o be_v catechise_v or_o instruct_v as_o shall_v be_v most_o to_o their_o edification_n a_o work_n that_o require_v so_o much_o unwearied_a diligence_n self-denial_n and_o holy_a skill_n and_o wherein_o we_o be_v like_a to_o meet_v with_o so_o much_o resistance_n and_o yet_o do_v appear_v to_o we_o of_o great_a necessity_n and_o use_n that_o we_o earnest_o crave_v your_o prayer_n for_o such_o qualification_n and_o success_n the_o state_n of_o your_o affair_n we_o partly_o understand_v by_o the_o information_n of_o coll._n bridges_n we_o hearty_o pray_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o harvest_n to_o send_v forth_o more_o labourer_n among_o you_o and_o can_v we_o contribute_v any_o thing_n to_o so_o good_a a_o work_n we_o shall_v willing_o do_v it_o but_o able_a minister_n fit_a for_o the_o work_n with_o you_o be_v too_o few_o and_o many_o of_o they_o so_o weak_a of_o body_n that_o they_o be_v unfit_a for_o travel_n and_o most_o of_o they_o so_o engage_v to_o their_o godly_a people_n and_o the_o people_n so_o impatient_a of_o a_o motion_n for_o their_o remove_n that_o the_o work_n will_v be_v very_o hard_a but_o we_o hope_v to_o be_v faithful_a in_o our_o endeavour_n whatever_o be_v the_o success_n brethren_n we_o crave_v your_o prayer_n to_o god_n that_o we_o may_v be_v faithful_a and_o successful_a in_o his_o work_n as_o also_o that_o brotherly_a correspondency_n which_o you_o motion_n may_v abide_v and_o we_o remain_v your_o brethren_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n rich._n baxter_n teacher_n of_o the_o church_n at_o kiderminster_n jarvis_n bryan_n teacher_n of_o the_o church_n at_o old_a swinford_n henry_n oasland_n teacher_n of_o the_o church_n at_o bewdeley_n andr._n tristram_n teacher_n of_o the_o church_n at_o clent_n tho._n baldwin_n minister_n at_o wolverly_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o associate_v minister_n meet_v at_o kiderminster_n august_n 12._o 1655._o to_o the_o reverend_a our_o much_o honour_a brother_n dr._n winter_n pastor_n of_o the_o church_n at_o dublin_n to_o be_v communicate_v by_o he_o to_o the_o associate_v church_n in_o ireland_n these_o they_o write_v we_o also_o a_o second_o letter_n which_o i_o here_o subjoin_v reverend_a and_o much_o value_v brethren_n your_o affectionate_a letter_n in_o answer_n to_o we_o by_o that_o honourable_a person_n we_o have_v receive_v and_o do_v desire_v that_o these_o line_n may_v testify_v our_o thankfulness_n to_o you_o for_o your_o love_a and_o free_a acceptation_n of_o our_o desire_n of_o a_o brotherly_a correspondency_n those_o pant_n of_o you_o for_o the_o peace_n and_o union_n of_o the_o saint_n we_o doubt_v not_o will_v be_v to_o your_o comfort_n at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o your_o account_n god_n be_v not_o unjust_a to_o forget_v your_o work_n and_o labour_n of_o love_n go_v on_o therefore_o dear_a brethren_n in_o his_o strength_n who_o work_n it_o be_v and_o of_o who_o power_n and_o presence_n you_o have_v have_v so_o great_a experience_n we_o trust_v as_o our_o heart_n be_v with_o you_o so_o our_o prayer_n shall_v not_o be_v want_v for_o you_o at_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n we_o thank_v you_o for_o your_o joy_n at_o our_o association_n and_o success_n and_o that_o we_o still_o breath_n after_o that_o happy_a work_n sure_o if_o after_o our_o long_a experience_n of_o those_o woeful_a desolation_n that_o division_n and_o dissension_n have_v involve_v the_o saint_n in_o our_o heart_n shall_v not_o be_v enlarge_v after_o union_n and_o peace_n that_o must_v repair_v our_o breach_n we_o shall_v have_v cause_n to_o suspect_v our_o union_n with_o and_o love_n to_o our_o head_n we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a how_o much_o the_o self-love_n and_o pride_n of_o some_o and_o the_o misguide_a zeal_n of_o other_o of_o approve_a sincerity_n have_v advance_v the_o design_n of_o the_o grand_a enemy_n by_o over_o eager_a and_o unbrother_o bitterness_n even_o in_o matter_n circumstantial_a neither_o be_v we_o altogether_o ignorant_a how_o subtle_o that_o old_a serpent_n and_o deceiver_n have_v labour_v by_o a_o pretext_n of_o love_n to_o swallow_v up_o truth_n it_o be_v for_o a_o while_o the_o only_a cry_n love_n love_n yet_o not_o the_o least_o hint_n of_o truth_n which_o have_v most_o need_n of_o their_o charity_n be_v miserable_o tear_v and_o mangle_a to_o which_o our_o charity_n lead_v we_o to_o attribute_v the_o praise_n of_o many_o of_o our_o brethren_n as_o be_v unwilling_a to_o buy_v love_n with_o the_o loss_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v the_o apostle_n advice_n that_o the_o truth_n shall_v be_v speak_v in_o love_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v contend_v earnest_o for_o the_o faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n but_o thanks_o be_v to_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o truth_n that_o have_v preserve_v his_o darling_n from_o the_o devourer_n make_v the_o way_n of_o love_n exceed_v aimable_fw-fr because_o of_o truth_n so_o that_o we_o trust_v it_o will_v not_o lie_v untrodden_a by_o the_o lord_n people_n through_o circumstantial_a difference_n whilst_o all_o hold_v the_o form_n of_o wholesome_a word_n consider_v one_o another_o and_o walk_v together_o in_o what_o they_o be_v agree_v and_o wait_v upon_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o reveal_n of_o that_o wherein_o they_o differ_v perfection_n be_v reserve_v for_o another_o world_n that_o there_o be_v any_o beginning_n and_o that_o by_o you_o we_o hear_v of_o more_o we_o earnest_o desire_v our_o heart_n may_v be_v due_o and_o thankful_o affect_v therewith_o pray_v the_o god_n of_o truth_n and_o peace_n to_o uphold_v his_o truth_n and_o to_o shower_v down_o plentiful_o the_o spirit_n of_o love_n and_o peace_n that_o at_o the_o lord_n be_v one_o so_o his_o people_n may_v be_v one._n your_o present_a work_n we_o be_v in_o some_o measure_n sensible_a of_o its_o necessity_n and_o weightiness_n wherefore_o our_o prayer_n shall_v be_v for_o you_o that_o the_o lord_n who_o servant_n you_o be_v and_o who_o work_n it_o be_v will_v be_v with_o you_o to_o counsel_n encourage_v strengthen_v and_o prosper_v you_o in_o it_o as_o we_o crave_v your_o daily_a prayer_n for_o these_o infant_n church_n that_o our_o god_n may_v vouchsafe_v his_o spirit_n and_o presence_n to_o we_o who_o lot_n be_v cast_v in_o this_o wilderness_n have_v many_o enemy_n to_o conflict_n withal_o from_o within_o as_o well_o as_o without_o your_o advice_n and_o brotherly_a assistance_n we_o request_v as_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n and_o opportunity_n to_o communicate_v our_o affair_n to_o you_o last_o the_o deep_a
from_o their_o church_n answ._n no_o but_o consent_n to_o improve_v the_o common_a truth_n and_o perform_v our_o duty_n even_o to_o such_o as_o differ_v from_o we_o in_o this_o object_n 3._o there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o a_o hundred_o of_o they_o that_o will_v consent_v to_o these_o term_n answ._n if_o they_o will_v not_o who_o can_v help_v it_o when_o we_o have_v try_v they_o we_o have_v do_v our_o duty_n and_o leave_v they_o without_o excuse_n object_n 4._o shall_v we_o confess_v a_o schismatical_a church_n for_o a_o true_a church_n answ._n every_o schism_n null_v not_o the_o church_n or_o ministry_n that_o be_v guilty_a of_o it_o else_o most_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v null_v if_o they_o reject_v the_o essential_o of_o a_o church_n they_o be_v none_o object_n 5._o baptism_n be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n the_o apostle_n heb._n 6._o 1._o put_v it_o among_o the_o principle_n answ._n 1._o it_o be_v only_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o baptism_n that_o be_v essential_a 2._o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o a_o principle_n because_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o first_o thing_n teach_v but_o not_o because_o it_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n 3._o the_o anabaptist_n have_v baptism_n in_o their_o church_n though_o not_o of_o infant_n object_n 6._o to_o make_v a_o league_n with_o schsmaticks_n be_v to_o be_v guilty_a of_o their_o schism_n answ._n true_a if_o by_o that_o league_n you_o own_o approve_v or_o consent_v to_o their_o schism_n but_o not_o by_o agree_v with_o they_o to_o perform_v common_a duty_n object_n 7._o they_o be_v undermine_v the_o church_n and_o ministry_n and_o shall_v we_o seek_v peace_n with_o such_o answ._n 1._o those_o that_o we_o speak_v of_o be_v not_o such_o 2._o if_o they_o be_v yet_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o hinder_v they_o by_o agree_v to_o moderate_a way_n and_o common_a duty_n object_n 8._o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o their_o infant_n damnation_n as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v by_o not_o believe_v their_o part_n in_o the_o covenant_n nor_o dedicate_a they_o to_o god_n answ._n they_o virtual_o consent_v for_o their_o infant_n in_o that_o they_o will_v actual_o do_v it_o if_o they_o know_v the_o promise_n object_n 9_o they_o be_v under_o god_n visible_a displeasure_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n answ._n so_o far_o as_o god_n disow_v they_o we_o must_v do_v so_o but_o no_o further_o object_n 10._o we_o shall_v be_v reproach_v as_o comply_v with_o they_o answ._n slanderous_a tongue_n can_v excuse_v we_o from_o plain_a duty_n object_n 11._o those_o who_o we_o shall_v excommunicate_v we_o may_v not_o have_v communion_n with_o but_o the_o anabaptist_n shall_v be_v excommunicate_v ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n answ._n i_o deny_v the_o minor_a take_v of_o such_o anabaptist_n as_o we_o have_v now_o in_o question_n object_n 12._o it_o be_v a_o scandalous_a sin_n unrepented_a of_o answ._n 1._o so_o be_v many_o a_o great_a error_n which_o man_n must_v not_o be_v excommunicate_v for_o 2._o it_o be_v virtual_o repent_v of_o see_v if_o they_o know_v the_o evil_a of_o it_o they_o will_v repent_v object_n 13._o you_o will_v have_v a_o loose_a discipline_n than_o the_o prelate_n or_o papist_n for_o they_o will_v not_o communicate_v with_o anabaptist_n answ._n 1._o i_o only_o avoid_v divide_v rigour_n and_o cruelty_n 2._o they_o have_v multitude_n in_o their_o communion_n that_o know_v not_o what_o baptism_n be_v nor_o to_o what_o use_n nor_o who_o christ_n be_v whether_o god_n or_o man_n nor_o many_o other_o fundamental_o ergo_fw-la their_o discipline_n be_v far_o loose_a than_o i_o desire_v but_o too_o partial_a also_o the_o anabaptist_n object_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o propagate_v the_o truth_n and_o if_o you_o will_v have_v communion_n with_o we_o you_o must_v be_v baptize_v answ._n 1._o you_o be_v bind_v to_o propagate_v first_o the_o great_a truth_n that_o salvation_n lie_v on_o and_o to_o do_v nothing_o that_o may_v hinder_v this_o by_o promote_a your_o own_o opinion_n 2._o if_o you_o reject_v communion_n with_o all_o but_o anabaptist_n you_o reject_v all_o the_o church_n through_o most_o age_n of_o the_o world_n and_o no_o church_n no_o christ_n and_o no_o christ_n no_o christian_n nor_o any_o salvation_n 3._o blame_v we_o not_o if_o we_o be_v not_o easy_o bring_v to_o your_o opinion_n if_o we_o have_v but_o these_o reason_n 1._o you_o confess_v no_o thanks_o to_o you_o that_o infant_n be_v once_o church-member_n by_o god_n appointment_n and_o have_v never_o yet_o prove_v that_o he_o cast_v they_o out_o again_o and_o we_o must_v have_v good_a proof_n of_o that_o before_o we_o can_v be_v satisfy_v with_o your_o way_n 2._o we_o can_v be_v hasty_a to_o believe_v a_o evil_a and_o we_o know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sad_a penal_a evil_n for_o infant_n to_o be_v put_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o ergo_fw-la we_o will_v have_v proof_n of_o it_o before_o we_o believe_v it_o 3._o it_o must_v be_v no_o easy_a matter_n with_o we_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o head_n and_o shepherd_n of_o the_o church_n have_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la have_v a_o church_n of_o a_o false_a constitution_n as_o to_o the_o very_a material_n and_o entrance_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o this_o day_n except_o a_o few_o within_o this_o twenty_o year_n that_o trouble_v it_o in_o a_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o now_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n we_o must_v expect_v a_o right_a constitution_n as_o if_o christ_n have_v sleep_v or_o regard_v not_o his_o church_n or_o be_v the_o head_n of_o a_o body_n which_o he_o disown_v we_o can_v hasty_o believe_v such_o thing_n i_o say_v again_o no_o church_n no_o christ_n for_o no_o body_n no_o head_n and_o if_o no_o christ_n then_o there_o be_v no_o christ_n now_o take_v heed_n therefore_o how_o you_o un●church_n or_o difow_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o very_a frame_n for_o so_o many_o age_n a_o offer_n of_o christian_a fraternal_a communion_n to_o the_o brethren_n that_o be_v against_o or_o doubtful_a about_o baptise_v infant_n of_o believer_n it_o be_v our_o exceed_a joy_n that_o we_o have_v all_o one_o god_n one_o saviour_n one_o spirit_n one_o faith_n and_o one_o baptismal_a covenant_n one_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n one_o end_n and_o hope_n and_o be_v member_n of_o one_o catholic_n church_n and_o agree_v about_o god_n worship_n in_o the_o most_o and_o great_a part_n and_o it_o be_v our_o grief_n and_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o great_a humiliation_n that_o we_o can_v come_v no_o near_o and_o that_o by_o the_o remnant_n of_o our_o difference_n the_o wicked_a be_v so_o harden_v the_o weak_a offend_v our_o charity_n hinder_v our_o holy_a communion_n and_o mutual_a edification_n disturb_v our_o mind_n discompose_v and_o the_o gospel_n the_o catholic_n church_n and_o our_o saviour_n dishonour_v lament_v this_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o unhappiness_n while_o we_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o absent_a from_o the_o lord_n the_o centre_n of_o perfect_a unity_n and_o concord_n and_o know_v it_o to_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o walk_v by_o the_o same_o rule_n and_o mind_n the_o same_o thing_n so_o far_o as_o we_o have_v attain_v and_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n to_o love_v one_o another_o and_o observe_v how_o frequent_o and_o urgent_o brotherly_a love_n and_o forbearance_n and_o the_o unity_n and_o concord_n of_o christian_n be_v press_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o uncharitableness_n and_o division_n condemn_v that_o as_o far_o as_o may_v be_v we_o may_v promote_v our_o common_a end_n of_o christianity_n and_o with_o one_o mind_n and_o mouth_n may_v glorify_v god_n we_o who_o name_n be_v under-written_a do_v make_v this_o follow_a offer_n of_o communion_n 1._o to_o all_o those_o that_o join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o forego_n profession_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o have_v be_v baptise_a since_o their_o infant-baptism_n as_o think_v it_o unlawful_a or_o insufficient_a we_o offer_v free_a communion_n in_o our_o particular_a church_n with_o leave_n to_o enter_v your_o dissent_n from_o our_o infant-baptism_n into_o the_o church-register_n or_o record_n so_o be_v it_o you_o will_v thenceforth_a walk_v in_o that_o love_n and_o holiness_n and_o that_o obedience_n to_o the_o faithful_a overseer_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o that_o concord_n and_o brotherly_n communion_n with_o the_o church_n as_o be_v require_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n according_a to_o your_o power_n and_o will_v resist_v uncharitableness_n discord_n and_o division_n and_o join_v with_o we_o in_o our_o common_a work_n for_o the_o common_a ends._n 2._o to_o all_o those_o that_o join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o forego_n profession_n of_o faith_n though_o they_o have_v be_v baptize_v since_o their_o infant-baptism_n or_o think_v that_o baptism_n unlawful_a and_o dare_v not_o hold_v local_a communion_n with_o we_o in_o
reason_n that_o be_v bring_v against_o coordinate_a tradition_n you_o will_v invalidate_v subservient_fw-fr tradition_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o convey_v the_o very_a scripture_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o assure_v we_o that_o these_o be_v all_o the_o same_o write_n and_o not_o corrupt_v and_o which_o be_v the_o canonical_a and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o 6._o my_o six_o reason_n against_o your_o assertion_n be_v that_o it_o seem_v injurious_a to_o the_o work_n we_o have_v in_o hand_n for_o 1._o you_o will_v by_o any_o one_o error_n keep_v or_o cast_v out_o many_o godly_a man_n from_o the_o ministry_n 2._o you_o will_v harden_v the_o libertine_n when_o they_o discern_v it_o 3._o and_o you_o will_v do_v more_o to_o introduce_v a_o universal_a toleration_n than_o can_v be_v do_v by_o most_o other_o mean_n imaginable_a for_o 1._o one_o flaw_n find_v in_o your_o work_n may_v cause_v it_o to_o be_v cast_v by_o 2._o it_o will_v seem_v a_o potent_a reason_n for_o such_o toleration_n when_o the_o choice_a enemy_n shall_v mistake_v in_o their_o very_a fundamental_o 3._o you_o will_v force_v we_o that_o be_v your_o brethren_n to_o petition_n for_o liberty_n and_o then_o other_o will_v think_v that_o they_o may_v come_v in_o at_o the_o same_o gap_n 7._o i_o add_v it_o will_v be_v a_o dishonour_n to_o the_o parliament_n 1._o when_o they_o shall_v send_v so_o hard_a a_o work_n abroad_o and_o establish_v such_o a_o crooked_a rule_n if_o they_o thus_o receive_v it_o from_o you_o if_o they_o reject_v or_o correct_v it_o it_o will_v be_v their_o grief_n to_o see_v our_o division_n and_o mistake_n 8._o last_o i_o add_v that_o it_o will_v be_v much_o to_o our_o own_o dishonour_n for_o 1._o the_o parliament_n will_v exact_o scan_v it_o and_o no_o doubt_n discover_v the_o mistake_n and_o 2._o many_o too_o curious_a eye_n will_v examine_v it_o and_o what_o a_o reproach_n will_v it_o be_v to_o we_o to_o be_v the_o byword_n of_o gainsayer_n and_o to_o hear_v that_o such_o choose_a enemy_n have_v err_v in_o their_o very_a fundamental_o and_o for_o the_o papist_n to_o insult_v over_o we_o and_o say_v we_o can_v agree_v in_o no_o confession_n and_o know_v not_o yet_o what_o religion_n we_o be_v of_o and_o withal_o it_o may_v bring_v we_o under_o jealousy_n with_o other_o that_o indeed_o we_o be_v friend_n to_o universal_a toleration_n and_o make_v such_o flaw_n in_o our_o work_n to_o destroy_v it_o and_o intend_v to_o undo_v all_o by_o our_o over_n or_o misdo_n i_o shall_v not_o have_v presume_v to_o have_v put_v you_o to_o so_o much_o trouble_n nor_o have_v make_v any_o stop_n in_o your_o work_n when_o the_o dispatch_n be_v so_o desirable_a have_v not_o the_o consequent_n of_o silence_n seem_v to_o i_o so_o intolerable_a i_o only_o add_v 1._o i_o dare_v not_o think_v but_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a both_o for_o matter_n and_o word_n to_o afford_v we_o fundamental_o and_o to_o any_o thing_n which_o it_o speak_v i_o be_o ready_a to_o subscribe_v 2._o i_o dare_v not_o think_v that_o your_o late_a reverend_a assembly_n have_v leave_v out_o the_o very_a fundamental_o in_o their_o large_a confession_n to_o which_o in_o this_o article_n i_o offer_v to_o subscrible_v 3._o i_o dare_v not_o undertake_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o justify_v that_o man_n from_o the_o charge_n of_o damnable_a infidelity_n who_o have_v have_v only_o verbal_a tradition_n of_o god_n revelation_n of_o the_o sum_n of_o christianity_n as_o if_o this_o do_v not_o make_v his_o infidelity_n inexcusable_a because_o he_o have_v it_o not_o from_o scripture_n but_o i_o think_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v damn_v for_o his_o infidelity_n who_o believe_v not_o in_o christ_n if_o he_o have_v all_o other_o mean_v beside_o the_o scripture_n to_o help_v he_o to_o believe_v ri._n baxter_n after_o this_o paper_n they_o new_o word_v the_o article_n which_o occasion_v the_o follow_a paper_n the_o article_n all_o the_o mean_n of_o reveal_v jesus_n christ_n be_v subordinate_a and_o subservient_fw-fr to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o none_o of_o they_o coordinate_a it_o be_v no_o small_a trouble_n to_o i_o that_o i_o be_v necessitate_v to_o be_v the_o least_o delay_n to_o your_o proceed_n by_o reason_n of_o my_o unsatisfiedness_n with_o the_o former_a article_n but_o that_o after_o our_o endeavour_n for_o a_o closure_n in_o that_o point_n and_o when_o we_o think_v that_o all_o have_v be_v bring_v to_o agreement_n the_o matter_n of_o our_o difference_n shall_v be_v again_o receive_v by_o the_o addition_n of_o this_o article_n be_v yet_o a_o great_a trouble_n to_o i_o not_o so_o much_o for_o my_o own_o sake_n as_o other_o lest_o it_o shall_v offend_v the_o parliament_n and_o open_v the_o mouth_n of_o our_o adversary_n that_o we_o can_v ourselves_o agree_v in_o fundamental_o and_o lest_o it_o prove_v a_o occasion_n for_o other_o to_o sue_v for_o a_o universal_a toleration_n i_o be_o unsatisfied_a in_o the_o last_o that_o be_v the_o negative_a clause_n of_o this_o article_n as_o i_o be_v in_o the_o former_a 1._o as_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o and_o 2._o as_o to_o the_o weight_n of_o it_o as_o a_o test_n for_o the_o minister_n that_o shall_v be_v allow_v to_o preach_v 3._o and_o as_o to_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o to_o salvation_n as_o a_o fundamental_a concern_v the_o first_o it_o must_v be_v remember_v 1._o that_o you_o speak_v of_o all_o mean_n of_o reveal_n christ_n without_o any_o exception_n limitation_n or_o restriction_n no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o ordinary_a mean_n nor_o restrain_v it_o to_o mean_n sufficient_a to_o salvation_n 2._o that_o you_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v coordinate_a absolute_o also_o without_o any_o distinction_n exception_n or_o limitation_n 3._o i_o desire_v it_o may_v be_v observe_v that_o i_o be_o not_o myself_o impose_v any_o term_n on_o you_o or_o offer_v the_o term_n subordinate_a or_o any_o other_o to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o article_n but_o only_o give_v a_o reason_n why_o i_o can_v subscribe_v it_o as_o it_o be_v which_o i_o shall_v now_o render_v have_v premise_v these_o observation_n 1._o the_o word_n coordinate_a be_v comprehensive_a and_o ambiguous_a i_o conceive_v do_v among_o other_o contain_v these_o several_a sense_n follow_v 1._o as_o the_o species_n be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o genus_fw-la 2._o as_o the_o near_a cause_n in_o the_o same_o rank_n be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o high_a and_o remote_a and_o all_o to_o the_o first_o cause_n as_o in_o generation_n the_o near_a parent_n to_o the_o remote_a 3._o as_o the_o mean_n be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o end_n in_o order_n thereto_o 4._o as_o the_o less_o worthy_a be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o more_o worthy_a in_o degree_n of_o comparison_n many_o other_o common_a sense_n i_o now_o pass_v these_o be_v at_o least_o the_o three_o first_o common_a and_o the_o oppose_a co-ordination_a universal_o deny_v i_o see_v no_o evidence_n to_o warrant_v the_o denial_n 1._o in_o the_o first_o respect_n i_o conceive_v that_o divine_a revelation_n be_v the_o genus_fw-la by_o word_n and_o by_o writing_n be_v distinct_a species_n and_o as_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o thing_n reveal_v be_v the_o genus_fw-la so_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o perfect_a word_n in_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o sacrament_n and_o other_o mean_v foremention_v be_v distinct_a species_n 2._o in_o order_n of_o efficiency_n i_o conceive_v that_o some_o mean_n be_v supra-ordinate_a to_o scripture_n and_o some_o coordinate_a and_o subordinate_a in_o several_a respect_n and_o some_o subordinate_a only_a of_o which_o i_o shall_v give_v instance_n anon_o 3._o in_o order_n to_o the_o near_a end_n those_o mean_n be_v subordinate_a to_o scripture_n which_o be_v supra-ordinate_a in_o efficiency_n and_o some_o of_o those_o which_o ab_fw-la origine_fw-la be_v coordinate_a when_o yet_o in_o order_n to_o the_o more_o remote_a end_v they_o be_v coordinate_a 4._o in_o order_n of_o dignity_n some_o mean_n be_v above_o scripture_n some_o below_o it_o for_o instance_n in_o these_o case_n 1._o jesus_n christ_n himself_o both_o as_o the_o great_a prophet_n of_o his_o church_n indite_v the_o scripture_n by_o his_o spirit_n and_o send_v the_o apostle_n and_o still_o send_v minister_n and_o own_v his_o own_o word_n be_v one_o mean_n of_o reveal_v himself_o to_o mankind_n and_o he_o be_v in_o order_n of_o efficiency_n and_o of_o dignity_n above_o the_o scripture_n but_o subordinate_a as_o to_o the_o end_n which_o be_v near_o but_o not_o as_o to_o the_o ultimate_a end_n 2._o the_o holy_a ghost_n inspire_v the_o apostle_n be_v a_o mean_n of_o revelation_n supra-ordinate_a to_o the_o scripture_n in_o efficiency_n and_o dignity_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o enable_v and_o send_v forth_o pastor_n be_v coordinate_a in_o efficiency_n and_o subordinate_a as_o to_o one_o
duty_n will_v permit_v i_o have_v do_v my_o part_n in_o urge_v you_o and_o they_o with_o my_o offer_n till_o you_o call_v i_o unto_o more_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n madam_n may_v i_o entreat_v you_o to_o read_v impartial_o and_o deliberate_o 1._o my_o little_a book_n call_v the_o tr●●_n catholic_n and_o catholic_n church_n etc._n etc._n which_o i_o shall_v send_v or_o bring_v you_o 2._o my_o preface_n before_o the_o disputation_n with_o mr._n johnson_n and_o the_o letter_n in_o the_o end_n and_o the_o second_o part_n and_o then_o the_o first_o 3._o my_o two_o first_o book_n against_o popery_n the_o safe_a religion_n and_o the_o key_n for_o your_o former_a read_n of_o they_o before_o any_o doubt_v have_v make_v you_o observe_v the_o stress_n of_o argument_n be_v nothing_o if_o you_o will_v but_o now_o read_v they_o again_o impartial_o after_o your_o contrary_a conception_n continue_v a_o papist_n if_o you_o can_v and_o true_o if_o you_o will_v not_o do_v thus_o much_o for_o your_o own_o soul_n because_o man_n engage_v you_o to_o the_o contrary_a that_o dare_v not_o appear_v to_o make_v good_a their_o own_o cause_n i_o must_v be_v a_o witness_n against_o you_o before_o the_o lord_n that_o you_o wilful_o resuse_v instruction_n and_o sell_v your_o soul_n at_o too_o cheap_a a_o rate_n i_o try_v when_o i_o be_v last_o with_o you_o to_o revive_v your_o reason_n by_o propose_v to_o you_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o i_o can_v not_o prevail_v though_o you_o have_v nothing_o to_o answer_v that_o be_v not_o against_o common_a sense_n and_o it_o be_v impossible_a any_o thing_n controvert_v can_v be_v bring_v near_a you_o or_o make_v plain_a than_o to_o be_v bring_v to_o your_o eye_n and_o taste_n and_o feel_v and_o not_o you_o only_o but_o all_o man_n else_o sense_n go_v before_o faith_n faith_n be_v no_o faith_n but_o upon_o supposition_n of_o sense_n and_o understanding_n if_o therefore_o common_a sense_n be_v fallible_a faith_n must_v needs_o be_v so_o but_o methinks_v yet_o i_o shall_v have_v hope_n of_o revive_v your_o charity_n you_o can_v be_v a_o papist_n indeed_o but_o you_o must_v believe_v that_o out_o of_o their_o church_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o pope_n dominion_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n and_o consequent_o no_o justification_n and_o charity_n or_o save_v grace_n and_o be_v it_o possible_a you_o can_v so_o easy_o believe_v your_o religious_a father_n to_o be_v in_o hell_n your_o prudent_a pious_a mother_n to_o be_v void_a of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o in_o a_o state_n of_o damnation_n and_o not_o only_o i_o that_o be_o a_o stranger_n to_o you_o but_o all_o the_o million_o of_o better_a people_n in_o the_o world_n to_o be_v in_o the_o same_o state_n of_o gracelesness_n and_o damnation_n and_o all_o because_o we_o believe_v not_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n general_n or_o deputy_n on_o earth_n and_o dare_v not_o subject_v ourselves_o to_o his_o usurp_a dominion_n when_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o protest_v before_o the_o lord_n as_o we_o shall_v answer_v it_o at_o his_o bar_n that_o we_o will_v be_v his_o subject_n but_o for_o fear_n of_o the_o high_a displeasure_n of_o the_o true_a head_n and_o king_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o fear_n of_o sin_v and_o damn_v our_o own_o soul_n and_o that_o we_o be_v hearty_o willing_a to_o read_v and_o study_v and_o pray_v and_o hear_v all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v for_o they_o and_o some_o of_o we_o read_v as_o much_o of_o their_o write_n as_o of_o our_o own_o and_o more_o and_o will_v not_o stick_v at_o cost_n or_o pain_n or_o loss_n or_o shame_n be_v it_o to_o travail_v over_o land_n and_o sea_n to_o find_v out_o that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n if_o that_o will_v do_v it_o and_o they_o be_v so_o indeed_o but_o the_o more_o we_o study_v the_o more_o we_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o his_o assistance_n the_o more_o diligent_o we_o search_v we_o be_v the_o more_o resolve_v and_o convince_v that_o their_o way_n as_o it_o differ_v from_o we_o be_v false_a and_o that_o they_o be_v the_o most_o superstitious_a tyrannical_a leprous_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n condemn_v the_o main_a body_n because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v under_o their_o abominable_a dominion_n and_o will_v not_o sin_v as_o much_o as_o they_o we_o hold_v all_o that_o be_v hold_v necessary_a by_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o we_o dare_v not_o make_v a_o new_a faith_n to_o ourselves_o as_o the_o papal_a sectary_n have_v do_v must_v we_o renounce_v both_o our_o sense_n and_o reason_n and_o put_v out_o the_o eye_n of_o natural_a understanding_n and_o also_o renounce_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o christian_a charity_n and_o step_v into_o the_o throne_n and_o pronounce_v damnation_n not_o only_o upon_o all_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n that_o we_o have_v be_v acquaint_v with_o ourselves_o but_o also_o on_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o die_v for_o even_o on_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o all_o this_o because_o they_o will_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o corrupt_v his_o doctrine_n discipline_n and_o worship_n and_o herein_o obey_v a_o usurp_a vice_n christ_n must_v we_o do_v all_o this_o or_o else_o be_v judge_v to_o damnation_n by_o the_o sectary_n of_o rome_n for_o my_o part_n i_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o fear_v their_o sentence_n that_o i_o appeal_v to_o christ_n who_o body_n they_o condemn_v and_o i_o have_v rather_o be_v torture_v in_o their_o inquisition_n and_o cut_v as_o small_a as_o herb_n to_o the_o pot_n and_o be_v account_v the_o odious_a wretch_n on_o earth_n than_o be_v guilty_a of_o be_v a_o papist_n at_o all_o but_o especial_o on_o such_o hellish_a term_n as_o these_o if_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v damn_v as_o no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n it_o will_v be_v impossible_a to_o prove_v your_o sect_n or_o fragment_n to_o be_v the_o church_n any_o more_o than_o any_o other_o christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n of_o his_o body_n eph._n 5._o 23_o and_o to_o he_o as_o to_o its_o head_n it_o be_v subject_a ver_fw-la 24._o and_o this_o body_n be_v that_o which_o be_v sanctify_v by_o he_o ver_fw-la 26._o and_o by_o one_o spirit_n all_o his_o member_n be_v baptize_v into_o one_o body_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 12_o 13._o do_v you_o never_o note_v where_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n be_v fully_a describe_v that_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v make_v but_o member_n and_o christ_n only_o the_o head_n 1_o cor._n 27_o 28_o 29._o eph._n 4._o 4_o 5_o 7_o 11._o there_o be_v but_o one_o lord_n etc._n etc._n but_o diversity_n of_o gift_n of_o who_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o when_o thousand_o be_v add_v to_o the_o church_n even_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v act_v 2._o 47._o what_o make_v they_o christian_n but_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n and_o what_o be_v they_o baptise_a into_o but_o into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n peter_n or_o paul_n baptize_v none_o into_o their_o own_o name_n nor_o dare_v the_o pope_n himself_o lest_o his_o innovation_n be_v too_o visible_a christ_n have_v say_v he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v mark_v 16._o 16._o do_v they_o ever_o then_o subject_a any_o baptism_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o eunuch_n act_v 8._o subject_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o only_o say_v i_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o be_v baptise_a if_o man_n can_v not_o be_v save_v without_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o none_o of_o the_o apostle_n preach_v this_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n why_o do_v they_o never_o say_v you_o must_v believe_v in_o or_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o you_o can_v be_v save_v will_v they_o be_v so_o unfaithful_a as_o to_o hide_v a_o necessary_a article_n why_o do_v peter_n himself_o act_v 2._o by_o baptism_n take_v three_o thousand_o into_o the_o church_n without_o preach_v any_o of_o this_o doctrine_n to_o they_o the_o gospel_n profess_v that_o he_o that_o have_v the_o son_n have_v life_n 1_o joh._n 5._o 11_o 12._o and_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n joh._n 3._o 16._o and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n and_o now_o up_o step_v a_o man_n of_o rome_n and_o presume_v to_o reverse_v the_o gospel_n and_o say_v it_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n for_o all_o this_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v
whole_a christian_a world_n 5._o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n the_o possessor_n keeper_n and_o teacher_n of_o god_n oracle_n and_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o be_v most_o sure_a and_o comfortable_a truth_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o rome_n any_o more_o than_o to_o jerusalem_n or_o alexandria_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o universality_n of_o christian_n the_o true_a catholic_n church_n but_o it_o may_v prevail_v against_o corinthian_n gallatean_n roman_n or_o any_o particular_a part_n as_o it_o prevail_v against_o pope_n john_n xxii_o alias_o xxiii_o to_o make_v he_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n and_o against_o pope_n eugenius_n to_o make_v he_o a_o heretic_n if_o general_a council_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v 6._o as_o to_o what_o you_o say_v of_o apostle_n still_o place_v in_o the_o church_n when_o any_o show_v we_o a_o immediate_a mission_n by_o their_o commission_n and_o by_o miracle_n tongue_n and_o a_o spirit_n of_o revelation_n and_o infallability_n prove_v themselves_o apostle_n we_o shall_v believe_v they_o till_o than_o we_o remember_v that_o church_n that_o be_v commend_v for_o try_v they_o that_o say_v they_o be_v apostle_n and_o be_v not_o and_o find_v they_o liar_n rev._n 23._o peter_n and_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n with_o he_o we_o acknowledge_v and_o paul_n we_o acknowledge_v but_o know_v none_o proper_o call_v apostle_n live_v now_o but_o if_o it_o be_v only_o the_o name_n and_o not_o the_o office_n that_o you_o differ_v about_o and_o by_o apostle_n you_o mean_v not_o man_n immediate_o send_v by_o christ_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n with_o a_o spirit_n of_o miracle_n and_o infallability_n which_o be_v our_o sense_n of_o that_o word_n but_o some_o other_o sort_n of_o man_n then_o if_o they_o be_v ordinory_n pastor_n or_o bishop_n it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o difference_n if_o not_o you_o must_v describe_v they_o before_o we_o can_v know_v they_o they_o be_v to_o blame_v whoever_o they_o be_v that_o they_o call_v not_o themselves_o apostle_n and_o tell_v we_o where_o who_o and_o how_o many_o they_o be_v if_o they_o be_v so_o indeed_o 7._o they_o be_v to_o be_v account_v heathen_n and_o publican_n that_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n admonish_v they_o but_o sure_o other_o pastor_n beside_o apostle_n must_v admonish_v and_o be_v hear_v and_o other_o church_n beside_o the_o roman_a must_v hold_v or_o refuse_v communion_n as_o be_v there_o signify_v either_o you_o will_v erroneous_o have_v that_o text_n understand_v of_o the_o universal_a church_n or_o else_o true_o of_o a_o particular_a church_n if_o the_o former_a what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v but_o a_o corrupt_v part_n if_o the_o latter_a it_o be_v no_o more_o to_o the_o roman_a than_o any_o other_o which_o be_v particular_a church_n also_o sure_o this_o be_v plain_a truth_n if_o you_o be_v willing_a to_o see_v 8._o you_o say_v the_o faith_n of_o which_o believer_n be_v be_v that_o of_o the_o roman_n spread_v through_o the_o world_n answ._n yes_o and_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o ephesian_n philippian_n colossians_n too_o and_o all_o one_o the_o roman_n have_v not_o a_o faith_n of_o their_o own_o specifical_o different_a from_o other_o nor_o do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o apostle_n ever_o give_v one_o word_n of_o command_n to_o other_o church_n to_o conform_v their_o faith_n to_o rome_n or_o take_v that_o church_n for_o their_o mistress_n or_o sovereign_n these_o fancy_n pride_n have_v set_v up_o against_o christ_n the_o faith_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v as_o much_o know_v through_o the_o world_n as_o that_o of_o rome_n and_o sure_o you_o think_v not_o that_o be_v know_v through_o the_o world_n make_v they_o the_o rule_n or_o ruler_n of_o the_o world_n 9_o upon_o observation_n you_o find_v this_o church_n shine_v as_o a_o light_n and_o set_v as_o a_o city_n on_o a_o hill_n and_n be_v not_o jerusalem_n antioch_n alexandria_n ephesus_n etc._n etc._n so_o too_o sure_o they_o be_v all_o faithful_a preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n especial_o the_o apostle_n be_v observable_a as_o such_o light_n and_o city_n to_o the_o world_n that_o wonder_v at_o their_o doctrine_n which_o be_v all_o that_o christ_n there_o say_v and_o as_o i_o say_v the_o universal_a church_n be_v more_o observable_a than_o the_o roman_a sect_n and_o other_o particular_a church_n be_v and_o be_v as_o light_v and_o conspicuous_a as_o it_o and_o the_o most_o conspicuous_a church_n have_v from_o thence_o no_o pretence_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n or_o ruler_n of_o the_o rest_n 10._o you_o say_v this_o church_n have_v be_v ever_o triumphant_a ever_o heresy_n answ._n 1._o what!_o when_o honorius_n be_v by_o two_o or_o three_o general_a council_n condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n pope_n john_n xxii_o and_o eugenius_n as_o beforesaid_a for_o that_o and_o worse_o with_o many_o more_o 2._o woe_n to_o the_o church_n if_o other_o have_v not_o conquer_v heresy_n better_a than_o the_o roman_a party_n have_v do_v 3._o and_o veri●y_o do_v you_o think_v that_o a_o particular_a church_n be_v therefore_o the_o rule_n or_o ruler_n to_o the_o rest_n because_o it_o triumph_v over_o heresy_n 11._o you_o add_v immovable_a in_o persecution_n answ._n 1._o for_o they_o have_v be_v the_o great_a persecutor_n as_o leech_n suck_v and_o swell_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o thousand_o and_o ten_o thousand_o of_o the_o saint_n and_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n o_o the_o blood_n that_o will_v be_v find_v among_o they_o when_o the_o righteous_a judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v make_v inquisition_n for_o blood_n among_o their_o massacree_n and_o inquisition_n 2._o be_v that_o church_n unmoveable_a in_o persecution_n when_o the_o head_n of_o it_o pope_n marcellinus_n offer_v incense_n to_o idol_n and_o liberius_n subscribe_v to_o the_o arrian_n and_o against_o athenasius_n what_o shall_v i_o tell_v you_o of_o more_o who_o i_o perceive_v be_v make_v believe_v the_o crow_n be_v white_a 3._o again_o it_o be_v a_o pitiful_a proof_n of_o their_o rule_n to_o prove_v they_o immutable_a in_o persecution_n the_o church_n have_v many_o head_n if_o every_o church_n or_o bishop_n be_v its_o head_n that_o have_v stand_v fast_o in_o persecution_n 12._o you_o add_v and_o always_o watchful_a in_o the_o succession_n of_o pastor_n i_o give_v you_o the_o same_o answer_n 1._o watchful_a indeed_o when_o their_o own_o church_n history_n tell_v we_o of_o such_o multitude_n that_o come_v in_o by_o simony_n or_o poison_n or_o other_o murder_n or_o violence_n that_o have_v be_v heretic_n as_o aforeshewd_v or_o adulterer_n murderer_n and_o such_o impious_a wretch_n as_o the_o cannon_n depose_v and_o when_o john_n xii_o or_o xiii_o be_v depose_v by_o a_o council_n for_o ravish_a maid_n and_o wife_n at_o his_o door_n and_o abundance_n more_o such_o villainy_n and_o john_n xxii_o for_o worse_o and_o when_o eugenius_n continue_v the_o succession_n when_o a_o general_a council_n bid_v judge_v he_o a_o heretic_n wicked_a depose_v etc._n etc._n and_o when_o they_o have_v have_v such_o abundance_n of_o schism_n have_v two_o three_o or_o four_o pope_n alive_a at_o once_o and_o one_o schism_n of_o forty_o year_n in_o which_o no_o man_n know_v or_o know_v to_o this_o day_n which_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n and_o when_o mere_a possession_n be_v it_o that_o must_v prove_v their_o succession_n for_o beside_o these_o incapacity_n mr._n johnson_n you_o may_v see_v confess_v that_o no_o one_o way_n of_o election_n by_o cardinal_n people_z emperor_n bishop_n council_n etc._n etc._n have_v be_v hold_v or_o be_v necessary_a nor_o any_o consecration_n necessary_a at_o all_o to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o pope_n and_o if_o a_o succession_n of_o bare_a possession_n serve_v how_o many_o church_n have_v the_o like_a yea_o 2._o constantinople_n ethiopia_n armenia_n and_o many_o other_o church_n have_v have_v a_o far_o more_o regular_a succession_n than_o rome_n of_o at_o least_o as_o good_a 3._o and_o it_o be_v a_o pitiful_a argument_n that_o because_o a_o church_n have_v have_v a_o succession_n of_o pastor_n therefore_o they_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n and_o other_o be_v no_o part_n or_o therefore_o they_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o ruler_n to_o the_o rest_n or_o therefore_o we_o must_v be_v of_o that_o particular_a church_n only_o sur●_n none_o deny_v the_o succession_n of_o pastor_n in_o england_n as_o to_o mere_a possession_n of_o the_o place_n if_o that_o will_v serve_v the_o turn_n 13._o to_o what_o you_o say_v of_o be_v 〈◊〉_d holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a and_o can_v deceive_v you_o i_o answer_v 1._o o_o dreadful_a delusion_n that_o a_o church_n head_v with_o horrid_a monster_n and_o not_o man_n 〈◊〉_d their_o own_o history_n describe_v a_o multitude_n of_o their_o pope_n shall_v
call_v itself_o and_o such_o man_n holy_a dare_v you_o read_v what_o i_o have_v write_v of_o their_o holiness_n in_o my_o key_n chap._n 34._o detection_n 25._o or_o procure_v they_o to_o answer_v that_o and_o the_o rest_n there_o 2._o be_v all_o that_o be_v holy_a the_o rule_n or_o ruler_n to_o all_o other_o when_o you_o have_v converse_v among_o the_o papist_n one_o seven_o year_n if_o delusion_n leave_v you_o reason_n and_o impartiality_n you_o will_v be_v more_o capable_a of_o compare_v they_o with_o your_o own_o parent_n and_o such_o as_o you_o live_v among_o here_o and_o judge_v which_o be_v the_o more_o holy_a 3._o as_o catholic_n signify_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n or_o such_o be_v hold_v the_o catholic_n faith_n so_o other_o church_n be_v much_o more_o such_o than_o rome_n as_o it_o signify_v the_o universal_n church_n rome_n be_v none_o such_o the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o apostolic_a those_o that_o be_v most_o exact_o of_o the_o apostolic_a faith_n be_v to_o be_v call_v apostolic_a but_o woe_n to_o we_o if_o we_o be_v in_o that_o no_o better_a than_o rome_n 14._o you_o may_v see_v now_o what_o pitiful_a ground_n you_o have_v for_o fly_v into_o a_o pest-house_n as_o a_o city_n of_o refuge_n or_o for_o 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o clean_a room_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o 〈◊〉_d yourself_o to_o that_o room_n that_o have_v the_o most_o leprous_a infect_a person_n in_o it_o as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o only_a church_n of_o god_n and_o for_o novelty_n o_o that_o the_o whole_a case_n 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v try_v and_o let_v that_o church_n that_o have_v introduce_v most_o novelty_n in_o faith_n and_o discipline_n and_o worship_n be_v most_o reject_v as_o unclean_a be_v you_o impartial_a the_o several_a 〈◊〉_d of_o our_o religion_n may_v put_v that_o part_n of_o the_o controversy_n 〈…〉_o you_o for_o our_o rule_n of_o religion_n be_v only_o the_o holy_a scripture_n if_o you_o show_v 〈◊〉_d that_o we_o misunder_o stand_v it_o we_o shall_v renounce_v that_o misunderstanding_n but_o to_o misunderstand_v scripture_n be_v to_o make_v a_o new_a rule_n no_o more_o than_o to_o understand_v your_o council_n and_o you_o know_v the_o scripture_n be_v no_o novelty_n but_o the_o elder_a your_o rule_n be_v council_n and_o papal_a decree_n which_o be_v new_a contradictory_n and_o endless_a and_o you_o never_o know_v when_o you_o have_v all_o and_o when_o your_o faith_n be_v at_o its_o maturity_n and_o no_o more_o to_o be_v add_v under_o pretence_n of_o determination_n if_o you_o dare_v read_v my_o 24_o 25_o and_o 35th_o decection_n in_o my_o key_n you_o may_v see_v quick_o who_o be_v the_o novelty_n one_o chief_a reason_n of_o my_o abhor_a popery_n be_v that_o i_o be_o absolute_o certain_a of_o its_o novelty_n madam_n i_o must_v take_v the_o freedom_n to_o say_v that_o when_o your_o priest_n dare_v neither_o dispute_n in_o your_o hear_n upon_o all_o the_o provoke_a offer_n that_o i_o make_v not_o yet_o will_v answer_v the_o book_n that_o i_o have_v write_v nor_o yet_o give_v you_o leave_v to_o read_v they_o they_o have_v imprison_v your_o soul_n in_o the_o partiality_n of_o a_o sect_n and_o while_o you_o be_v so_o unfaithful_a to_o yourself_o if_o you_o be_v miserable_a because_o you_o will_v not_o make_v use_n of_o the_o remedy_n and_o delude_v because_o you_o be_v resolve_v or_o oblige_v from_o come_v into_o the_o light_n your_o friend_n will_v have_v a_o easy_a account_n to_o make_v for_o you_o before_o god_n than_o yourself_o as_o have_v discharge_v their_o duty_n when_o you_o wilful_o refuse_v you_o what_o you_o read_v former_o against_o popery_n before_o you_o doubt_v or_o hear_v their_o fallacy_n be_v as_o nothing_o i_o suppose_v for_o i_o do_v not_o think_v you_o observe_v or_o remember_v the_o stress_n of_o the_o argumentation_n which_o you_o read_v we_o will_v have_v leave_n to_o pray_v for_o you_o though_o we_o can_v have_v leave_n to_o instruct_v you_o and_o god_n may_v hear_v we_o when_o you_o will_v not_o which_o i_o have_v the_o more_o hope_n of_o because_o of_o the_o piety_n of_o your_o parent_n and_o the_o prayer_n and_o tear_n of_o a_o tender_a mother_n pour_v out_o for_o you_o and_o your_o own_o well-meaning_a pious_a disposition_n i_o have_v know_v some_o such_o piety_n breed_v among_o we_o carry_v by_o mistake_n into_o their_o church_n but_o little_o initial_o breed_v there_o though_o they_o pretend_v that_o person_n of_o charity_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n with_o we_o must_v go_v to_o they_o to_o receive_v it_o i_o will_v i_o know_v whether_o you_o can_v say_v by_o true_a experience_n i_o feel_v no_o true_a love_n of_o god_n in_o my_o soul_n before_o but_o as_o soon_o as_o i_o turn_v papist_n i_o do_v and_o have_v now_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o his_o image_n which_o before_o i_o never_o have_v sure_o the_o change_n of_o a_o opinion_n about_o your_o pope_n and_o church_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o renew_n grace_n and_o love_n of_o god_n and_o heavenly_a mindedness_n be_v another_o i_o fear_v not_o your_o prayer_n bring_v your_o delusion_n and_o idolatry_n in_o your_o mother_n chamber_n as_o to_o herself_o while_o she_o walk_v uptight_o with_o god_n nothing_o that_o i_o find_v in_o your_o manual_n or_o the_o mass-book_n will_v ever_o have_v that_o power_n for_o the_o liberty_n of_o your_o religion_n which_o you_o say_v you_o hope_v for_o on_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o king_n declaration_n i_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v but_o 1._o that_o i_o never_o love_v cruelty_n in_o any_o and_o it_o have_v increase_v my_o version_n to_o popery_n that_o i_o still_o observe_v that_o lie_a and_o uncharitable_a cruelty_n have_v be_v the_o two_o hand_n by_o which_o it_o make_v such_o a_o bustle_n in_o the_o world_n 2._o and_o that_o i●_n italy_n spain_n and_o austria_n bavaria_n etc._n etc._n will_v grant_v liberty_n to_o protestant_n we_o shall_v see_v more_o equality_n in_o the_o expectation_n of_o it_o here_o but_o if_o you_o get_v dominion_n as_o well_o as_o liberty_n it_o will_v be_v no_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o goodness_n of_o your_o cause_n our_o god_n our_o rule_n our_o hope_n our_o end_n and_o portion_n be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o inquisition_n prison_n and_o flame_n as_o in_o prosperity_n we_o have_v a_o kingdom_n that_o can_v be_v move_v and_o treasure_n that_o none_o can_v rob_v we_o of_o it_o be_v for_o that_o and_o not_o for_o worldly_a prosperity_n that_o we_o renounce_v all_o sensuality_n heresy_n superstition_n idolatry_n tyranny_n and_o false_a worship_n and_o desire_v in_o pure_a and_o spiritual_a worship_n with_o faith_n and_o patience_n to_o wait_v for_o the_o come_v and_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o mouth_n and_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o come_v will_v destroy_v that_o wicked_a one_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n 2_o thess._n 2._o madam_n i_o rest_v your_o servant_n for_o and_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n rich._n baxter_n london_n jan._n 29._o 1660._o since_o the_o write_n of_o this_o i_o be_o inform_v that_o mr._n johnson_n be_v the_o person_n that_o you_o will_v have_v have_v to_o dispute_v for_o you_o and_o that_o do_v now_o and_o former_o dispute_v with_o dr._n gunning_n if_o so_o i_o like_v your_o condition_n or_o religion_n never_o the_o better_a for_o your_o deny_v it●_n when_o you_o confess_v he_o fear_v not_o any_o injury_n from_o i_o our_o religion_n be_v more_o a_o friend_n to_o truth_n for_o the_o honourable_a lady_n anne_n lindsey_n at_o calais_n this._n §_o 87._o when_o the_o king_n be_v receive_v with_o the_o general_n acclamation_n of_o his_o people_n the_o expectation_n of_o man_n be_v various_a according_a to_o their_o several_a interest_n and_o inducement_n some_o plain_a and_o moderate_a episcopal_a man_n think_v of_o reconciliation_n and_o union_n with_o the_o say_a presbyterian_o yea_o and_o a_o reward_n to_o the_o presbyterian_o for_o bring_v in_o the_o king_n the_o more_o politic_a man_n of_o the_o diocesan_n way_n understand_v that_o upon_o the_o king_n return_n all_o the_o law_n that_o have_v be_v make_v in_o nineteen_o year_n viz._n since_o his_o father_n depart_v from_o the_o parliament_n be_v void_a and_o so_o that_o all_o their_o ancient_a power_n and_o honour_n and_o revenue_n will_v fall_v to_o they_o without_o any_o more_o ado_n and_o that_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v but_o to_o keep_v the_o minister_n and_o people_n in_o quietness_n and_o hope_n till_o time_n shall_v full_o do_v the_o work_n some_o few_o presbyterian_o think_v the_o king_n will_v favour_v they_o as_o well_o as_o other_o for_o stir_v up_o the_o soldier_n and_o city_n to_o restore_v he_o in_o london_n i_o find_v that_o mr._n calamy_n for_o his_o age_n and_o political_a understanding_n and_o
yield_v to_o we_o for_o concord_n that_o see_v both_o together_o we_o may_v see_v what_o probability_n of_o success_n we_o have_v and_o the_o king_n promise_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o §_o 95._o hereupon_o we_o depart_v and_o appoint_v to_o meet_v from_o day_n to_o day_n at_o zion_n college_n and_o to_o consult_v there_o open_o with_o any_o of_o our_o brethren_n that_o will_v please_v to_o join_v with_o we_o that_o none_o may_v say_v they_o be_v exclude_v some_o city_n minister_n come_v among_o we_o and_o some_o come_v not_o and_o divers_a country_n minister_n who_o be_v in_o the_o city_n come_v also_o to_o we_o as_o dr._n worth_a since_o a_o bishop_n in_o ireland_n mr._n fulwood_n since_o archdeacon_n of_o totnes_n etc._n etc._n but_o mr._n matth._n newcomen_fw-mi be_v most_o constant_a in_o assist_v we_o §_o 96._o in_o these_o debate_n we_o find_v the_o great_a inconvenience_n of_o too_o many_o actor_n though_o there_o can_v be_v too_o many_o consenter_n to_o what_o be_v well_o do_v for_o that_o which_o seem_v the_o most_o convenient_a expression_n to_o one_o seem_v inconvenient_a to_o another_o and_o that_o we_o that_o all_o agree_v in_o matter_n have_v much_o ado_n to_o agree_v in_o word_n but_o after_o about_o two_o or_o three_o week_n time_n we_o draw_v up_o the_o follow_a paper_n of_o proposal_n which_o with_o archbishop_n usher_n form_n of_o government_n call_v his_o reduction_n etc._n etc._n we_o shall_v offer_v to_o the_o king_n mr._n calamy_n draw_v up_o most_o with_o dr._n reynolds_n dr._n reynolds_n and_o dr._n worth_n draw_v up_o that_o which_o be_v against_o the_o ceremony_n i_o only_o prevail_v with_o they_o to_o premise_v the_o four_o first_o particular_n for_o the_o countenance_v godliness_n the_o ministry_n personal_a profession_n and_o the_o lord_n day_n they_o be_v backward_o because_o they_o be_v not_o the_o point_n in_o controversy_n but_o yield_v at_o last_o on_o the_o reason_n offer_v they_o about_o discipline_n we_o design_o adhere_v to_o bishop_n usher_n model_n without_o a_o word_n of_o alteration_n that_o so_o they_o may_v have_v less_o to_o say_v against_o our_o offer_n as_o be_v our_o own_o and_o that_o the_o world_n may_v see_v that_o it_o be_v episcopacy_n itself_o which_o they_o refuse_v and_o that_o they_o contend_v against_o the_o archbishop_n as_o well_o as_o against_o we_o and_o that_o we_o plead_v not_o at_o all_o with_o they_o for_o presbytery_n unless_o a_o moderate_a episcopacy_n be_v presbytery_n yet_o be_v there_o a_o faction_n that_o call_v this_o offer_n of_o bishop_n usher_n episcopacy_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o impudent_a expectation_n i_o also_o prevail_v with_o our_o brethren_n to_o offer_v a_o abstract_n of_o our_o large_a paper_n lest_o the_o read_n of_o the_o large_a shall_v seem_v tedious_a to_o the_o king_n which_o abstract_v verbatim_o as_o follow_v at_o their_o desire_n i_o draw_v up_o and_o have_v here_o after_o adjoin_v the_o first_o address_n and_o proposal_n of_o the_o minister_n may_v it_o please_v your_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n we_o your_o majesty_n most_o loyal_a subject_n can_v but_o acknowledge_v it_o as_o a_o very_a great_a mercy_n of_o god_n that_o immediate_o after_o your_o so_o wonderful_a and_o peaceable_a restoration_n unto_o your_o throne_n and_o government_n for_o which_o we_o ●less_v his_o name_n he_o have_v stir_v up_o your_o royal_a heart_n as_o to_o a_o zealous_a testimony_n against_o all_o profaneness_n in_o the_o people_n so_o to_o endeavour_v a_o happy_a compose_n of_o the_o difference_n and_o heal_v of_o the_o sad_a breach_n which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o we_o shall_v according_a to_o our_o bind_a duty_n become_v humble_a suitor_n at_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n that_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n who_o have_v put_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o this_o into_o your_o majesty_n heart_n will_v by_o his_o heavenly_a wisdom_n and_o holy_a spirit_n to_o assist_v you_o therein_o and_o bring_v your_o resolution_n unto_o so_o perfect_a a_o effect_n and_o issue_n that_o all_o the_o good_a people_n of_o these_o kingdom_n may_v have_v abundant_a cause_n to_o rise_v up_o and_o bless_v you_o and_o to_o bless_v god_n who_o have_v delight_v in_o you_o to_o make_v you_o his_o instrument_n in_o so_o happy_a a_o work_n that_o as_o your_o glorious_a progenitor_n henry_n vii_o be_v happy_a in_o unite_n the_o house_n of_o york_n and_o lancaster_n and_o your_o grandfather_n king_n james_n of_o bless_a memory_n in_o unite_n the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n and_o scotland_n so_o this_o honour_n may_v be_v reserve_v for_o your_o majesty_n as_o a_o radiant_a jewel_n in_o your_o crown_n that_o by_o your_o princely_a wisdom_n and_o christian_a moderation_n the_o heart_n of_o all_o your_o people_n may_v be_v unite_v and_o the_o unhappy_a difference_n and_o misunderstanding_n among_o brethren_n in_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a so_o compose_v that_o the_o lord_n may_v be_v one_o and_o his_o name_n one_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o your_o dominion_n in_o a_o humble_a conformity_n to_o this_o your_o majesty_n christian_a design_n we_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v a_o firm_a agreement_n between_o our_o brethren_n and_o we_o in_o the_o doctrinal_a truth_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n and_o in_o the_o substantial_a part_n of_o divine_a worship_n and_o that_o the_o difference_n be_v only_o in_o some_o various_a conception_n about_o the_o ancient_a form_n of_o church-government_n and_o some_o particular_n about_o liturgy_n and_o ceremony_n do_v in_o all_o humble_a obedience_n to_o your_o majesty_n represent_v that_o in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o ultimate_a end_n of_o church-government_n and_o ministry_n be_v that_o holiness_n of_o life_n and_o salvation_n of_o soul_n may_v be_v effectual_o promote_v we_o humble_o desire_v in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o we_o may_v be_v secure_v of_o those_o thing_n in_o practice_n of_o which_o we_o seem_v to_o be_v agree_v in_o principle_n 1._o that_o those_o of_o our_o flock_n who_o be_v serious_a and_o diligent_a about_o the_o matter_n of_o their_o salvation_n may_v not_o by_o word_n of_o scorn_n or_o any_o abusive_a usage_n be_v suffer_v to_o be_v reproachful_o handle_v crime_n but_o have_v liberty_n and_o encouragement_n in_o those_o christian_a duty_n of_o exhort_v and_o provoke_v one_o another_o unto_o love_n and_o good_a work_n of_o build_v up_o one_o another_o in_o their_o most_o holy_a faith_n and_o by_o all_o religious_a and_o peaceable_a mean_n of_o further_a one_o another_o in_o the_o way_n of_o eternal_a life_n they_o be_v not_o therein_o opposite_a to_o church-assembly_n nor_o refuse_v the_o guidance_n and_o due_a inspection_n of_o their_o pastor_n and_o be_v responsible_a for_o what_o they_o do_v or_o say_v 2._o that_o each_o congregation_n may_v have_v a_o learned_a orthodox_n and_o godly_a pastor_n reside_v among_o they_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o people_n may_v be_v public_o instruct_v and_o edify_v by_o preach_v every_o lord_n day_n again_o by_o catechise_v and_o frequent_a administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o of_o baptism_n and_o other_o ministerial_a act_n as_o the_o occacasion_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o people_n may_v require_v both_o in_o health_n and_o sickness_n and_o that_o effectual_a provision_n of_o law_n be_v make_v that_o such_o as_o be_v insufficient_a negligent_a or_o scandalous_a may_v not_o be_v admit_v to_o or_o permit_v in_o so_o sacred_a a_o function_n and_o employment_n 3._o that_o none_o may_v be_v admit_v to_o the_o lord_n supper_n till_o they_o competent_o understand_v the_o principle_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o do_v personal_o and_o public_o own_o their_o baptismal_a covenant_n ceremony_n by_o a_o credible_a profession_n of_o faith_n and_o obedience_n not_o contradict_v the_o same_o by_o a_o contrary_a profession_n or_o by_o a_o scandalous_a life_n and_o that_o unto_o such_o only_a confirmation_n if_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n may_v be_v administer_v and_o that_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o pastor_n to_o who_o the_o catechise_n and_o instruct_v of_o those_o under_o their_o charge_n do_v appertain_v may_v be_v produce_v before_o any_o person_n receive_v confirmation_n which_o course_n we_o humble_o conceive_v will_n much_o conduce_v to_o the_o quiet_v of_o those_o sad_a dispute_n and_o division_n which_o have_v great_o trouble_v the_o church_n of_o god_n among_o we_o touch_v church-member_n and_o communicant_n 4._o that_o a_o effectual_a course_n be_v take_v for_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n appropriate_v the_o same_o to_o holy_a exercise_n both_o in_o public_a and_o day_n private_a without_o unnecessary_a divertisement_n it_o be_v certain_a and_o by_o long_a experience_n find_v that_o the_o observation_n thereof_o be_v a_o special_a mean_n of_o preserve_v and_o promote_a the_o power_n of_o god_n liness_n and_o obviate_a profaneness_n then_o for_o the_o matter_n in_o difference_n viz._n church-government_n
judgement_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a even_o of_o those_o church_n that_o have_v not_o retain_v they_o every_o national_a church_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v the_o best_a and_o most_o proper_a judge_n what_o be_v fit_a for_o themselves_o to_o appoint_v in_o order_n to_o decency_n and_o edification_n without_o prescribe_v to_o other_o church_n §_o 24._o that_o the_o ceremony_n have_v be_v matter_n of_o contention_n in_o this_o or_o any_o other_o church_n be_v not_o either_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n enjoin_v or_o the_o enjoin_v of_o the_o same_o by_o lawful_a authority_n but_o partly_o from_o the_o weakness_n of_o some_o man_n judgement_n unable_a to_o search_v into_o the_o reason_n of_o thing_n and_o partly_o from_o the_o unsubduedness_n of_o some_o man_n spirit_n more_o apt_a to_o contend_v than_o willing_a to_o submit_v their_o private_a opinion_n to_o the_o public_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n §_o 25._o of_o those_o that_o be_v obnoxious_a to_o the_o law_n very_o few_o in_o comparison_n have_v be_v deprive_v and_o none_o of_o they_o for_o aught_o we_o know_v but_o such_o as_o after_o admonition_n and_o long_a forbearance_n final_o refuse_v to_o do_v what_o not_o only_o the_o law_n require_v to_o be_v do_v but_o themselves_o also_o former_o have_v solemn_o and_o as_o they_o process_v willing_o promise_v to_o do_v §_o 26._o we_o do_v not_o see_v with_o what_o conscience_n any_o man_n can_v leave_v the_o exercise_n of_o his_o ministry_n in_o his_o peculiar_a charge_n for_o not_o submit_v to_o lawful_a authority_n in_o the_o use_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v in_o his_o own_o judgement_n no_o more_o than_o inexpedient_a only_o and_o it_o be_v certain_o a_o great_a mistake_n at_o the_o least_o to_o call_v the_o submit_v to_o authority_n in_o such_o thing_n a_o bring_v the_o conscience_n under_o the_o power_n of_o they_o §_o 27._o the_o separation_n that_o have_v be_v make_v from_o the_o church_n be_v from_o the_o take_v a_o scandal_n where_o none_o be_v give_v the_o church_n have_v full_o declare_v her_o sense_n touch_v the_o ceremony_n impose_v as_o thing_n not_o in_o their_o nature_n necessary_a but_o indifferent_a but_o be_v chief_o occasion_v by_o the_o practice_n and_o defend_v from_o the_o principle_n of_o those_o that_o refuse_v conformity_n to_o the_o law_n the_o just_a rule_n and_o measure_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n §_o 28._o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v mutable_a show_v that_o they_o may_v therefore_o be_v change_v as_o they_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n shall_v see_v it_o expedient_a but_o it_o be_v no_o proof_n at_o all_o that_o it_o be_v therefore_o expedient_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v actual_o change_v yet_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a caution_n against_o the_o opinion_n or_o objection_n rather_o of_o their_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o imposer_n either_o necessary_a or_o substantial_o of_o worship_n beside_o this_o argument_n if_o it_o be_v of_o any_o force_n will_v infer_v a_o expediency_n of_o the_o often_o change_v even_o of_o good_a law_n whereas_o the_o change_n of_o law_n although_o liable_a to_o some_o inconvenience_n without_o great_a and_o evident_a necessity_n have_v be_v by_o wise_a man_n ever_o account_v a_o thing_n not_o only_o imprudent_a but_o of_o evil_a and_o sometime_o pernicious_a consequence_n §_o 29._o we_o full_o agree_v with_o they_o in_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n but_o we_o leave_v it_o to_o his_o majesty_n prudence_n and_o goodness_n to_o consider_v whether_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o the_o offence_n of_o some_o of_o his_o weak_a subject_n he_o be_v any_o way_n oblige_v to_o repeal_n the_o establish_v law_n the_o repeal_n whereof_o will_v be_v probable_o dissatisfactory_a to_o many_o more_o and_o those_o so_o far_o as_o we_o be_v able_a to_o judge_v no_o less_o considerable_a a_o part_n of_o his_o subject_n nor_o do_v we_o conceive_v his_o majesty_n by_o the_o apostle_n either_o doctrine_n or_o example_n oblige_v to_o any_o far_a condescension_n to_o particular_a person_n than_o may_v be_v subservient_fw-fr to_o the_o general_a and_o main_a end_n of_o public_a government_n the_o lord_n have_v entrust_v governor_n to_o provide_v not_o only_o thàt_v thing_n necessary_a in_o god_n worship_n be_v due_o perform_v but_o also_o that_o thing_n advise_o enjoin_v though_o not_o otherways_o necessary_a shall_v be_v orderly_a and_o due_o observe_v the_o too_o great_a neglect_n whereof_o will_v so_o cut_v the_o sinew_n of_o authority_n that_o it_o will_v become_v first_o infirm_a and_o then_o contemptible_a as_o we_o be_v no_o way_n against_o such_o tender_a and_o religious_a compassion_n in_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n as_o his_o majesty_n piety_n and_o wisdom_n shall_v think_v fit_a to_o extend_v so_o we_o can_v think_v that_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o some_o private_a person_n be_v to_o be_v lay_v in_o the_o balance_n against_o the_o public_a peace_n and_o uniformity_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v particular_a ceremony_n §_o 30._o it_o be_v most_o convenient_a that_o in_o the_o act_n of_o receive_v the_o lord_n supper_n one_o and_o the_o same_o gesture_n shall_v be_v uniform_o use_v by_o all_o the_o member_n of_o this_o church_n and_o kneel_v have_v be_v former_o enjoin_v and_o use_v therein_o as_o a_o gesture_n of_o great_a reverence_n and_o devotion_n and_o so_o most_o agreeable_a to_o that_o holy_a service_n and_o holiday_n of_o human_a institution_n have_v be_v observe_v by_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o the_o old-testament_n and_o by_o our_o bless_a saviour_n himself_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o primitive_a and_o follow_a time_n as_o apt_a mean_n to_o preserve_v the_o memorial_n of_o the_o chief_a mystery_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o such_o holiday_n be_v also_o fit_a time_n for_o the_o honest_a recreation_n of_o servant_n labourer_n and_o the_o mean_a sort_n of_o people_n for_o these_o reason_n and_o the_o great_a satisfaction_n of_o far_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o people_n we_o humble_o desire_v as_o a_o thing_n in_o our_o judgement_n very_o expedient_a that_o they_o may_v both_o be_v still_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n §_o 31._o as_o for_o the_o other_o three_o ceremony_n viz._n the_o surplice_n cross_n after_o baptism_n and_o bow_v at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n although_o we_o find_v not_o here_o any_o sufficient_a reason_n allege_v why_o they_o shall_v be_v utter_o abolish_v nevertheless_o how_o far_o forth_o in_o regard_n of_o tender_a conscience_n a_o liberty_n may_v be_v think_v fit_a to_o be_v indulge_v to_o any_o his_o majesty_n according_a to_o his_o great_a wisdom_n and_o goodness_n be_v best_a able_a to_o judge_v §_o 32._o but_o why_o they_o that_o confess_v that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o thing_n here_o mention_v be_v not_o to_o be_v value_v with_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v yet_o after_o they_o be_v establish_v by_o law_n disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n about_o they_o we_o understand_v not_o §_o 33._o we_o hearty_o desire_v that_o no_o innovation_n shall_v be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n or_o ceremony_n which_o have_v no_o foundation_n in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n impose_v to_o the_o disturbance_n of_o the_o peace_n thereof_o but_o that_o all_o man_n will_v use_v that_o liberty_n that_o be_v allow_v they_o in_o thing_n indifferent_a according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o christian_a prudence_n charity_n and_o moderation_n §_o 34._o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o believe_v that_o his_o majesty_n condescend_v to_o these_o demand_n will_v take_v away_o not_o only_a difference_n but_o the_o root_n and_o cause_n of_o they_o that_o we_o be_v confident_a it_o will_v prove_v the_o seminary_n of_o new_a difference_n both_o by_o give_v dissatisfaction_n to_o those_o that_o be_v well_o please_v with_o what_o be_v already_o establish_v who_o be_v much_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o majesty_n subject_n and_o by_o encourage_v unquiet_a spirit_n when_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v grant_v to_o make_v further_a demand_n there_o be_v no_o assurance_n by_o they_o give_v what_o will_v content_v all_o dissenter_n than_o which_o nothing_o be_v more_o necessary_a for_o the_o settle_n of_o a_o firm_a peace_n in_o the_o church_n a_o defence_n of_o our_o proposal_n to_o his_o majesty_n for_o agreement_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n concern_v the_o preamble_n §_o 1._o we_o be_v not_o insensible_a of_o the_o great_a danger_n of_o the_o church_n through_o the_o doctrinal_a error_n of_o many_o of_o those_o with_o who_o we_o be_v at_o difference_n also_o about_o the_o point_n of_o government_n and_o worship_n now_o before_o we_o but_o yet_o we_o choose_v to_o say_v of_o the_o party_n that_o we_o be_v agree_v in_o doctrinal_n because_o they_o subscribe_v the_o same_o holy_a scripture_n and_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o book_n
necessary_a engine_n for_o the_o divide_n and_o persecute_v of_o the_o church_n but_o judge_v thou_o o_o lord_n according_a to_o thy_o righteousness_n in_o the_o day_n which_o be_v come_v but_o the_o example_n of_o corporation_n and_o college_n be_v bring_v in_o who_o prevent_v offence_n by_o subscription_n and_o oath_n and_o even_o so_o have_v christ_n who_o spirit_n will_v impose_v nothing_o on_o the_o church_n but_o thing_n necessary_a appoint_v a_o vow_n and_o solemn_a covenant_n to_o be_v the_o way_n of_o entrance_n into_o his_o church_n and_o the_o apish_a spirit_n which_o follow_v he_o to_o counter-work_n he_o by_o the_o addition_n of_o humane_a church_n sacrament_n and_o ordinance_n do_v also_o imitate_v he_o in_o make_v their_o oath_n and_o promise_n necessary_a to_o engage_v man_n to_o their_o service_n and_o institution_n as_o christ_n have_v make_v baptism_n necessary_a to_o engage_v we_o to_o his_o service_n and_o institution_n and_o your_o argument_n for_o diocesan_n be_v so_o weak_a that_o we_o wonder_v not_o that_o you_o think_v both_o oath_n subscription_n prison_n confiscation_n and_o banishment_n necessary_a to_o enforce_v they_o what_o you_o add_v of_o such_o person_n as_o have_v themselves_o exact_v condition_n of_o their_o communion_n not_o warrant_v by_o law_n we_o understand_v not_o either_o the_o law_n warrant_v man_n to_o own_o christ_n for_o their_o saviour_n and_o to_o own_o their_o own_o membership_n in_o the_o particular_a church_n which_o they_o demand_v constant_a communion_n with_o or_o it_o do_v not_o if_o it_o do_v not_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o desire_v more_o than_o be_v warrant_v by_o that_o law_n if_o it_o do_v you_o shall_v have_v do_v well_o to_o instance_n what_o person_n and_o what_o exaction_n you_o mean_v if_o you_o speak_v this_o of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the●_n land_n that_o dislike●_n your_o prelacy_n it_o be_v too_o gross_a a_o untruth_n to_o have_v be_v utter_v in_o the_o light_n if_o you_o speak_v only_o of_o some_o person_n or_o party_n that_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o other_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o their_o liberty_n and_o ministry_n nor_o indeed_o be_v it_o good_a argue_n that_o such_o oath_n and_o subscription_n as_o the_o church_n of_o old_a do_v never_o know_v may_v be_v impose_v by_o the_o law_n of_o man_n because_o some_o brethren_n have_v late_o require_v such_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n as_o be_v impose_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o let_v we_o prevail_v with_o you_o to_o drive_v this_o no_o further_o than_o the_o person_n whoever_o they_o be_v do_v drive_v it_o who_o you_o blame_v their_o utmost_a penalty_n on_o the_o refuser_n of_o their_o condition_n be_v non-communion_n with_o they_o a_o thing_n which_o many_o of_o you_o voluntary_o choose_v let_v this_o be_v all_o our_o penalty_n for_o refuse_v your_o oath_n and_o subscription_n if_o we_o can_v get_v no_o better_o from_o you_o but_o shall_v we_o be_v silence_v imprison_v confiscate_v banish_v for_o refuse_v your_o oath_n and_o subscription_n because_o somebody_o impose_v thing_n which_o the_o law_n allow_v not_o in_o order_n to_o their_o own_o communion_n these_o be_v no_o fit_a proportion_n of_o justice_n §_o 17._o out_o of_o your_o own_o mouth_n then_o be_v your_o government_n condemn_v what_o act_n of_o parliament_n ratify_v your_o canon_n what_o law_n impose_v altar_n rail_n and_o the_o force_n of_o minister_n to_o read_v the_o book_n for_o dance_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n or_o what_o law_n do_v ratify_v many_o article_n of_o your_o visitation_n book_n and_o do_v the_o law_n sufficient_o provide_v for_o all_o those_o poor_a minister_n that_o be_v silence_v or_o suspend_v for_o not_o read_v the_o dance_a book_n or_o any_o such_o thing_n what_o the_o better_a be_v all_o those_o for_o the_o law_n that_o be_v silence_v or_o drive_v into_o foreign_a land_n but_o perhaps_o the_o law_n will_v provide_v for_o we_o indeed_o as_o you_o desire_v concern_v the_o liturgy_n §_o 18._o 1._o the_o doctrine_n be_v sound_a change_v but_o the_o apocryphal_a matter_n of_o your_o lesson_n in_o tobith_n judith_n bell_n and_o the_o dragon_n etc._n etc._n be_v scare_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 2._o whether_o it_o be_v fit_o suit_v let_v our_o exception_n and_o other_o paper_n be_v hear_v before_o your_o judgement_n go_v for_o infallible_a 3._o what_o man_n prayer_n you_o take_v your_o measure_n or_o encouragement_n from_o we_o know_v not_o but_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o if_o all_o the_o common_a prayer_n be_v twice_o a_o day_n read_v the_o time_n for_o psalm_n and_o sermon_n will_v be_v short_a and_o yet_o be_v they_o free_a from_o disorder_n and_o desectiveness_n in_o matter_n we_o can_v the_o better_o bear_v with_o the_o length_n though_o other_o prayer_n and_o sermon_n be_v partly_o exclude_v by_o they_o 4._o though_o we_o live_v in_o the_o same_o country_n we_o scarce_o differ_v any_o where_n more_o than_o in_o our_o very_a experience_n our_o experience_n unresistable_o convince_v we_o that_o a_o continue_a prayer_n do_v more_o to_o help_v most_o of_o the_o people_n and_o carry_v on_o their_o desire_n than_o turn_v almost_o every_o petition_n into_o a_o distinct_a prayer_n and_o make_v preface_n and_o conclusion_n to_o be_v near_o half_a the_o prayer_n and_o if_o the_o way_n of_o prayer_n record_v in_o scripture_n even_o in_o the_o jew_n church_n where_o infirmity_n may_v be_v plead_v more_o than_o now_o be_v such_o as_o you_o we_o shall_v say_v no_o more_o in_o that_o against_o it_o but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o be_v not_o wise_a then_o overmuch_o 5._o we_o be_v content_a that_o the_o liturgy_n have_v such_o repetition_n as_o the_o scripture_n have_v so_o it_o may_v have_v no_o other_o and_o we_o be_v content_a that_o all_o extemporate_a prayer_n be_v restrain_v which_o be_v guilty_a of_o as_o much_o tautology_n and_o vain_a repetition_n as_o the_o liturgy_n be_v if_o this_o much_o will_v satisfy_v you_o we_o be_v agree_v 6._o nor_o be_v we_o against_o any_o such_o responsal_n as_o be_v fit_a to_o the_o end_v you_o mention_n if_o we_o be_v all_o such_o upon_o impartial_a examination_n let_v they_o stand_v 7._o but_o the_o question_n be_v 1._o whether_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n in_o the_o three_o first_o age_n or_o those_o of_o late_a age_n be_v more_o imitable_a 2._o and_o whether_o the_o other_o reform_a church_n have_v not_o more_o imitate_v the_o ancient_a of_o those_o church_n though_o we_o have_v more_o imitate_v the_o latter_a and_o more_o corrupt_a 3._o and_o whether_o our_o first_o work_n be_v to_o stop_v the_o papist_n mouth_n by_o please_v they_o or_o come_v too_o near_o they_o when_o we_o know_v they_o that_o be_v like_v they_o in_o all_o their_o corruption_n please_v they_o best_o yet_o be_v we_o not_o for_o any_o unnecessary_a difference_n from_o they_o or_o affection_n of_o causeless_a singularity_n as_o to_o the_o reform_a church_n testimony_n of_o our_o liturgy_n shall_v their_o very_a charity_n become_v our_o snare_n if_o they_o have_v like_v our_o form_n of_o prayer_n best_o they_o will_v some_o of_o they_o have_v imitate_v we_o and_o our_o martyr_n no_o doubt_n they_o honour_v as_o we_o do_v not_o as_o suffer_v for_o the_o modes_n and_o ceremony_n of_o that_o book_n as_o opposite_a to_o the_o reform_a church_n mode_n for_o so_o they_o suffer_v not_o but_o as_o suffer_v for_o the_o sound_a doctrine_n and_o true_a worship_n of_o the_o protestant_n as_o opposite_a to_o popery_n and_o the_o mass._n §_o 19_o your_o reason_n to_o prove_v your_o imposition_n not_o too_o rigorous_a be_v 1._o because_o they_o be_v by_o law_n if_o we_o tell_v you_o that_o so_o be_v the_o spanish_a inquisition_n you_o will_v say_v we_o compare_v our_o lawgiver_n to_o the_o spaniard_n if_o we_o say_v that_o your_o new-mentioned_n martyr_n be_v burn_v by_o law_n in_o england_n you_o will_v say_v that_o we_o compare_v they_o to_o papist_n but_o all_o these_o be_v law_n and_o so_o be_v those_o in_o reform_a country_n which_o be_v against_o bishop_n and_o ceremony_n do_v you_o therefore_o think_v they_o not_o too_o rigorous_a 2._o your_o other_o reason_n be_v that_o the_o rigour_n be_v no_o more_o than_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v the_o imposition_n effectual_a you_o never_o speak_v word_n more_o agreeable_a to_o your_o heart_n as_o far_o as_o by_o your_o practice_n we_o can_v judge_v of_o they_o either_o you_o mean_v effectual_a to_o change_v man_n judgement_n or_o effectual_a to_o make_v they_o go_v against_o their_o judgement_n or_o effectual_a to_o rid_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n or_o world_n the_o first_o you_o know_v they_o be_v unfit_a for_o if_o you_o think_v otherwise_o will_v you_o that_o your_o judgement_n shall_v have_v such_o kind_n of_o help_n to_o have_v set_v they_o right_a the_o second_o way_n they_o will_v be_v
christian_n and_o enough_o for_o any_o one_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n have_v they_o possess_v they_o to_o have_v glory_v in_o and_o many_o far_o mean_a be_v yet_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o call_v and_o reverence_v as_o father_n but_o we_o doubt_v this_o same_o spirit_n will_v make_v you_o think_v that_o many_o hundred_o more_o be_v but_o a_o few_o to_o be_v silence_v ever_o long_o and_o then_o your_o clemency_n will_v comfort_v the_o poor_a people_n that_o have_v ignorant_a or_o deboist_a reader_n instead_o of_o minister_n for_o too_o many_o such_o we_o have_v know_v that_o it_o be_v their_o pastor_n fault_n that_o obstinate_o refuse_v to_o conform_v when_o they_o have_v promise_v it_o that_o be_v that_o repent_v of_o the_o sin_n of_o their_o subscription_n when_o they_o discern_v it_o and_o have_v they_o never_o be_v ignorant_a enough_o to_o subscribe_v they_o have_v never_o enter_v and_o the_o many_o hundred_o which_o you_o thus_o keep_v from_o the_o ministry_n you_o make_v nothing_o of_o §_o 26._o whether_o diocesanes_n be_v a_o lawful_a authority_n as_o claim_v spiritual_a government_n and_o how_o far_o man_n may_v own_v they_o even_o in_o lawful_a thing_n be_v controversy_n to_o be_v elsewhere_o manage_v we_o justify_v no_o man_n leave_v his_o ministry_n upon_o the_o refusal_n of_o any_o thing_n but_o what_o he_o judge_v unlawful_a yea_o and_o what_o be_v real_o so_o §_o 27._o whether_o any_o offence_n be_v give_v though_o not_o enough_o to_o warrant_v separation_n let_v our_o argumentation_n on_o both_o side_n declare_v the_o say_a declaration_n of_o the_o church_n sense_n be_v not_o the_o small_a part_n of_o the_o scandal_n call_v a_o humane_a sacrament_n indifferent_a or_o no_o sacrament_n prove_v it_o not_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v call_v that_o the_o nonconformist_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o separation_n who_o do_v most_o against_o it_o be_v easy_o say_v and_o as_o easy_o prove_v as_o the_o arrian_n prove_v that_o the_o orthodox_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o luciferan_o who_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n for_o receive_v the_o arrian_n too_o easy_o to_o communion_n §_o 28._o church_n matter_n in_o this_o much_o differ_v from_o civil_a matter_n and_o its_o one_o thing_n to_o change_v a_o church_n custom_n when_o it_o dangerous_o prevail_v to_o corrupt_v man_n understanding_n and_o another_o thing_n when_o there_o be_v no_o such_o danger_n so_o hezekiah_n think_v when_o he_o destroy_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n and_o paul_n who_o before_o circumcise_a timothy_n when_o he_o say_v if_o you_o be_v circumcise_v christ_n shall_v profit_v you_o nothing_o can_v man_n have_v foresee_v that_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o imperial_a church_n will_v have_v be_v sublimate_v to_o such_o a_o challenge_v supremacy_n over_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n we_o suppose_v the_o ancient_n will_v have_v hold_v it_o their_o duty_n to_o have_v remove_v the_o primacy_n to_o some_o other_o seat_n §_o 29._o according_a to_o your_o council_n will_v you_o be_v judge_v of_o god_n the_o not-abating_a of_o the_o imposition_n be_v the_o cast_v off_o of_o many_o hundred_o of_o your_o brethren_n out_o of_o the_o ministry_n and_o of_o many_o thousand_o christian_n out_o of_o your_o communion_n but_o the_o abate_n of_o the_o imposition_n will_v so_o offend_v you_o as_o to_o silence_n or_o excommunicate_v none_o of_o you_o at_o all_o for_o e._n g._n we_o think_v it_o a_o sin_n to_o subscribe_v or_o swear_v canonical_a obedience_n or_o use_v the_o transient_a image_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n and_o therefore_o these_o must_v cast_v we_o out_o but_o you_o think_v it_o no_o sin_n to_o forbear_v they_o if_o the_o magistrate_n abate_v they_o and_o therefore_o none_o of_o you_o will_v be_v cast_v out_o by_o the_o abatement_n but_o it_o seem_v that_o your_o charity_n judge_v the_o bare_a displease_v of_o your_o appetite_n to_o the_o ceremony_n be_v a_o great_a evil_n than_o the_o silence_v and_o excommunicate_v all_o we_o your_o poor_a brethren_n though_o our_o imprisoment_n follow_v nay_o this_o be_v not_o all_o for_o your_o displeasure_n will_v be_v only_o that_o another_o man_n subscribe_v not_o cross_v not_o etc._n etc._n while_o you_o may_v do_v it_o yourselves_o as_o much_o as_o you_o please_v whether_o the_o cast_v out_o of_o so_o many_o minister_n and_o christian_n for_o such_o thing_n do_v more_o subserve_v the_o main_a end_n of_o public_a government_n than_o the_o forbearance_n will_v do_v if_o you_o know_v not_o we_o leave_v you_o to_o god_n conviction_n as_o also_o whether_o these_o thing_n be_v well_o impose_v and_o man_n obedience_n to_o authority_n and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o its_o uniformity_n or_o unity_n be_v well_o and_o just_o lay_v upon_o they_o such_o concession_n indeed_o may_v bear_v you_o out_o far_o concern_v particular_a ceremony_n §_o 30._o why_o then_o be_v it_o not_o as_o meet_v that_o one_o gesture_n be_v use_v by_o all_o in_o sing_v psalm_n or_o hear_v sermon_n why_o do_v the_o minister_n stand_v in_o prayer_n even_o in_o the_o sacrament_n prayer_n while_o the_o people_n kneel_v we_o speak_v against_o none_o of_o your_o liberty_n in_o use_v either_o kneel_v or_o holiday_n and_o perhaps_o some_o of_o we_o mean_a to_o use_v both_o ourselves_o but_o only_o beseech_v you_o that_o they_o may_v be_v no_o more_o impose_v than_o the_o ancient_a church_n impose_v they_o and_o we_o desire_v no_o more_o and_o if_o you_o reverence_v antiquity_n why_o will_v you_o not_o imitate_v it_o in_o point_n of_o imposition_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o thing_n itself_o but_o yet_o that_o antiquity_n be_v against_o kneel_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n at_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o they_o have_v but_o few_o of_o our_o holiday_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n we_o suppose_v you_o be_v not_o ignorant_a §_o 31._o it_o be_v well_o you_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v against_o liberty_n to_o forbear_v the_o other_o three_o ceremony_n the_o more_o unexcusablde_v will_v you_o be_v when_o you_o silence_n and_o excommunicate_v those_o that_o use_v they_o not_o §_o 32._o and_o its_o strange_a that_o mean_a understanding_n than_o you_o can_v see_v why_o man_n shall_v forbear_v that_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v value_v with_o the_o church_n peace_n a_o lie_n or_o a_o false_a subscription_n be_v not_o to_o be_v value_v with_o the_o church_n peace_n and_o be_v it_o therefore_o a_o wonder_n to_o you_o that_o man_n shall_v scruple_n they_o it_o be_v fit_a matter_n for_o the_o wonder_n of_o good_a man_n that_o after_o so_o long_a experience_n those_o that_o will_v needs_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o governor_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n shall_v so_o resolve_o lie_v the_o church_n peace_n upon_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o where_o they_o know_v beforehand_o that_o man_n of_o no_o conscience_n will_v all_o be_v peaceable_a and_o thousand_o of_o godly_a people_n be_v unsatisfied_a and_o that_o they_o will_v needs_o take_v all_o for_o disturber_n of_o the_o peace_n who_o jump_v not_o with_o their_o humour_n in_o every_o ceremony_n how_o willing_a soever_o to_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n §_o 33._o we_o be_v glad_a that_o you_o justify_v not_o innovation_n and_o arbitrariness_n and_o yet_o desire_v not_o such_o a_o cure_n as_o some_o do_v by_o get_v law_n which_o may_v do_v their_o work_n §_o 34._o if_o your_o want_n of_o charity_n be_v not_o extraordinary_a it_o can_v not_o work_v effectual_o to_o the_o afflict_v of_o your_o brethren_n and_o the_o church_n when_o we_o tell_v you_o what_o will_v end_v your_o difference_n you_o know_v our_o mind_n so_o much_o better_a than_o ourselves_o that_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v we_o but_o you_o will_v be_v confident_a that_o we_o will_v come_v on_o with_o new_a demand_n this_o be_v your_o way_n of_o conciliation_n when_o you_o be_v to_o bring_v in_o your_o utmost_a concession_n in_o order_n to_o our_o unity_n and_o it_o be_v promise_v by_o his_o majesty_n that_o you_o shall_v meet_v we_o half_a way_n you_o bring_v in_o nothing_o and_o persuade_v his_o majesty_n also_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o believe_v we_o in_o what_o we_o offer_v that_o it_o will_v be_v satisfactory_a if_o it_o be_v grant_v you_o say_v that_o it_o will_v give_v dissatisfaction_n to_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o majesty_n subject_n we_o be_v more_o charitable_a than_o to_o believe_v that_o a_o quarter_n of_o his_o majesty_n subject_n be_v so_o uncharitable_a as_o to_o be_v dissatisfy_v if_o their_o brethren_n be_v not_o silence_v and_o excommunicate_v for_o not_o swear_v subscribe_v or_o use_v a_o ceremony_n while_o they_o may_v do_v it_o as_o much_o as_o they_o listen_v themselves_o and_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o assurance_n give_v that_o it_o will_v content_v all_o dissenter_n
that_o we_o may_v not_o fear_v their_o power_n and_o the_o preface_v in_o knowledge_n of_o who_o stand_v our_o eternal_a life_n and_o who_o service_n be_v perfect_a freedom_n have_v no_o more_o evident_a respect_n to_o a_o petition_n for_o peace_n then_o to_o any_o other_o and_o the_o prayer_n itself_o come_v in_o disorderly_a while_o many_o prayer_n or_o petition_n be_v omit_v which_o according_a both_o to_o the_o method_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n shall_v go_v before_o 10._o the_o three_o collect_v entitle_v for_o grace_n be_v disorderly_a in_o that_o it_o follow_v that_o for_o peace_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o last_o petition_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o in_o that_o in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o morning_n prayer_n we_o begin_v to_o beg_v the_o mercy_n for_o the_o day_n and_o it_o be_v defective_a in_o that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o general_n request_v for_o defence_n from_o sin_n and_o danger_n and_o thus_o the_o main_a part_n of_o prayer_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o our_o common_a necessity_n be_v omit_v as_o may_v be_v see_v by_o compare_v our_o form_n with_o these_o 11._o most_o of_o our_o necessity_n be_v pass_v over_o in_o the_o like_o defective_a general_n also_o in_o the_o evening_n prayer_n 12._o the_o latany_n which_o shall_v contain_v all_o the_o ordinary_a petition_n of_o the_o church_n omit_v very_o many_o particular_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o our_o offer_a form_n compare_v with_o it_o it_o be_v tedious_a to_o number_v the_o half_a of_o its_o omission_n and_o it_o be_v exceed_o disorderly_a follow_v no_o just_a rule_n of_o method_n have_v beg_v pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o deprecated_a vengeance_n it_o proceed_v to_o evil_a in_o general_n and_o some_o few_o sin_n in_o particular_a and_o thence_o to_o a_o more_o particular_a enumeration_n of_o judgement_n and_o thence_o to_o the_o recitation_n of_o the_o part_n of_o that_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n and_o thence_o to_o the_o deprecation_n of_o judgement_n again_o and_o thence_o to_o prayer_n for_o the_o king_n and_o magistrate_n and_o then_o for_o all_o nation_n and_o then_o for_o love_n and_o obedience_n and_o then_o for_o several_a state_n of_o man_n and_o then_o for_o all_o man_n and_o for_o enemy_n and_o then_o for_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o then_o for_o repentance_n forgiveness_n and_o grace_n again_o and_o then_o turn_v to_o repetition_n of_o the_o same_o petition_n for_o pardon_n and_o mercy_n and_o after_o the_o lord_n prayer_n return_v to_o the_o same_o request_n again_o next_o this_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o prayer_n it_o repeat_v let_v us_o pray_v next_o be_v a_o prayer_n against_o adversity_n and_o persecution_n which_o be_v do_v before_o and_o both_o here_o and_o through_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prayer_n the_o deprecation_n of_o bodily_a suffering_n have_v very_o much_o too_o large_a a_o proportion_n while_o spiritual_n be_v too_o general_o and_o brief_o touch_v which_o be_v unbeseeming_a the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o mind_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o of_o the_o spirit_n rom._n 8._o 5_o 6_o 7._o next_o follow_v a_o reduplicate_v petition_n that_o god_n will_v arise_v and_o help_v we_o and_o deliver_v we_o with_o a_o interpose_a argument_n from_o his_o ancient_a work_n which_o come_v in_o without_o any_o reason_n or_o order_n and_o be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v before_o petition_v and_o seem_v to_o be_v fit_v to_o some_o special_a distress_n or_o danger_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o mention_v not_o that_o distress_n or_o danger_n and_o be_v to_o be_v use_v equal_o in_o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o church_n next_o this_o follow_v the_o doxology_n as_o if_o we_o be_v conclude_v and_o then_o we_o go_v on_o to_o the_o same_o request_n so_o oft_o before_o repeat_v for_o deliverance_n from_o affliction_n and_o sorrow_n though_o perhaps_o it_o be_v not_o a_o time_n of_o affliction_n with_o we_o but_o of_o joy_n and_o so_o it_o proceed_v to_o ask_v forgiveness_n so_o often_o ask_v and_o then_o four_o time_n repear_v the_o petition_n for_o audience_n when_o we_o draw_v near_o a_o end_n and_o twice_o repeat_v the_o general_a petition_n for_o mercy_n next_o this_o while_o we_o be_v pray_v we_o again_v say_v let_v we_o pray_v and_o then_o again_o pray_v against_o deserve_a evil_n and_o for_o holiness_n in_o general_n all_o out_o of_o any_o order_n and_o oft_o repeat_v while_o abundance_n of_o most_o weighty_a particular_n be_v never_o mention_v next_o this_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o king_n and_o the_o royal_a family_n be_v again_o repeat_v which_o go_v before_o if_o that_o be_v the_o due_a place_n why_o shall_v not_o our_o petition_n have_v be_v there_o put_v in_o together_o for_o they_o but_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o church_n be_v thus_o toss_v up_o and_o down_o like_o the_o wave_n of_o the_o sea_n from_o one_o thing_n to_o another_o and_o then_o to_o the_o first_o again_o without_o any_o regard_n to_o order_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o god_n of_o order_n next_o this_o the_o bishop_n and_o curate_n be_v pray_v for_o without_o the_o parish_n incumbent_a presbyter_n or_o else_o it_o be_v intimate_v that_o they_o be_v but_o the_o bishop_n curate_n or_o else_o they_o be_v call_v bishop_n themselves_o and_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v certain_o which_o of_o these_o be_v the_o sense_n and_o the_o preface_n will_v intimate_v to_o the_o people_n that_o it_o be_v some_o special_a great_a marvel_n for_o bishop_n and_o curate_n to_o have_v grace_n and_o after_o all_o this_o there_o be_v no_o particular_a petition_n for_o they_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n and_o necessity_n of_o their_o work_n or_o of_o their_o congregation_n but_o only_o this_o one_o general_n request_n that_o they_o may_v have_v god_n grace_n and_o blessing_n to_o please_v he_o last_o before_o the_o blessing_n be_v chrystsostom_n prayer_n mere_o for_o the_o grant_n of_o our_o request_n with_o two_o petition_n one_o for_o knowledge_n the_o other_o for_o life_n eternal_a the_o follow_a prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n on_o particular_a extraordinary_a occasion_n be_v with_o the_o confession_n the_o prayer_n for_o the_o king_n and_o the_o church_n militant_a the_o best_a compose_v of_o all_o the_o daily_a common_a prayer_n but_o that_o these_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n be_v all_o place_v after_o the_o benediction_n be_v disorderly_a and_o though_o it_o be_v most_o probable_a that_o yet_o it_o be_v intend_v they_o shall_v go_v before_o it_o in_o use_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n express_v in_o the_o book_n and_o thus_o we_o see_v how_o unlike_a the_o litany_n be_v to_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o how_o far_o from_o all_o just_a order_n which_o be_v a_o deformity_n that_o such_o holy_a work_n shall_v not_o be_v guilty_a of_o 13._o the_o like_a defectiveness_n and_o disorder_n be_v in_o the_o communion_n collect_v for_o the_o day_n that_o for_o the_o first_o sunday_n in_o advent_n have_v no_o petition_n for_o any_o thing_n in_o this_o life_n but_o the_o general_n to_o cast_v away_o the_o work_n of_o darkness_n and_o put_v on_o the_o armour_n of_o light_n that_o for_o the_o second_o sunday_n in_o advent_n be_v a_o very_a good_a prayer_n viz._n to_o learn_v and_o obey_v the_o scripture_n but_o there_o be_v no_o more_o reason_n why_o it_o shall_v be_v appropriate_a to_o that_o day_n than_o another_o or_o rather_o be_v a_o common_a petition_n for_o all_o day_n the_o same_o be_v true_a of_o that_o for_o the_o three_o sunday_n in_o advent_n which_o beg_v no_o more_o but_o hear_n our_o prayer_n and_o lightning_n our_o darkness_n as_o little_a reason_n be_v there_o for_o the_o appropriate_a that_o for_o the_o four_o sunday_n in_o advent_n to_o that_o day_n which_o be_v a_o general_n request_v that_o god_n will_v come_v among_o we_o and_o succeur_fw-fr we_o and_o speedy_o deliver_v we_o who_o through_o our_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n be_v sore_o let_v and_o hinder_v without_o acquaint_v we_o what_o the_o wickedness_n or_o the_o let_v be_v which_o be_v mean_v the_o prayer_n on_o christmas-day_n determine_v that_o christ_n be_v bear_v as_o on_o that_o day_n when_o the_o world_n of_o learned_a man_n be_v not_o agree_v of_o the_o month_n or_o year_n much_o less_o the_o day_n and_o the_o same_o prayer_n be_v appoint_v for_o divers_a day_n after_o so_o that_o if_o by_o day_n be_v mean_v any_o other_o space_n of_o time_n than_o a_o natural_a day_n than_o it_o be_v no_o fit_a for_o christmas_n day_n than_o another_o if_o it_o mean_v a_o natural_a day_n than_o it_o be_v a_o untruth_n on_o the_o follow_a day_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o imposer_n the_o collect_n on_o st._n stephen_n day_n have_v but_o one_o petition_n that_o on_o st._n john_n day_n have_v nothing_o in_o it_o proper_a to_o he_o
that_o all_o the_o snare_n that_o ever_o they_o can_v lay_v for_o we_o never_o procure_v they_o just_a advantage_n once_o true_o to_o say_v that_o we_o disagree_v among_o ourselves_o for_o though_o there_o be_v enough_o at_o a_o distance_n who_o can_v not_o have_v agree_v to_o all_o that_o we_o do_v yet_o we_o so_o far_o leave_v they_o out_o though_o to_o the_o displeasure_n both_o of_o the_o prelatist_n and_o they_o that_o no_o discord_n be_v find_v in_o any_o of_o our_o proposal_n or_o debate_n which_o cut_v some_o of_o they_o more_o to_o the_o heart_n than_o all_o that_o else_o we_o do_v to_o their_o displeasure_n §_o 209._o by_o this_o time_n our_o frequent_a cross_v of_o their_o expectation_n i_o see_v have_v make_v some_o of_o the_o bishop_n angry_a above_o all_o bishop_n morley_n who_o overrule_v the_o whole_a business_n and_o do_v interess_n himself_o in_o it_o deeply_o than_o the_o rest_n and_o be_v of_o a_o hot_a spirit_n and_o a_o ready_a tongue_n but_o that_o which_o displease_v they_o most_o be_v the_o freedom_n of_o my_o speech_n to_o they_o that_o be_v that_o i_o speak_v to_o they_o as_o on_o term_n of_o equality_n as_o to_o the_o cause_n yet_o with_o all_o honourable_a title_n to_o their_o person_n for_o i_o perceive_v that_o they_o have_v that_o eminency_n of_o power_n and_o interest_n that_o the_o great_a lord_n be_v glad_a of_o their_o favour_n do_v expect_v that_o the_o presence_n of_o so_o many_o of_o they_o shall_v have_v awe_v we_o into_o such_o a_o silence_n or_o cowardliness_n as_o shall_v have_v betray_v our_o cause_n or_o at_o least_o that_o their_o vehemency_n and_o passion_n and_o interruption_n shall_v have_v put_v we_o out_o of_o countenance_n but_o i_o entreat_v they_o to_o give_v we_o leave_v with_o the_o due_a honour_n of_o their_o person_n to_o use_v that_o necessary_a liberty_n of_o speech_n to_o they_o as_o beseem_v such_o as_o be_v very_o confident_a that_o they_o plead_v for_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n and_o the_o happiness_n and_o heal_n of_o a_o bleed_a church_n and_o that_o upon_o the_o warrant_n of_o the_o king_n commission_n and_o i_o must_v say_v that_o though_o they_o frown_v at_o my_o freedom_n of_o speech_n they_o never_o once_o accuse_v i_o of_o any_o unmannerly_a or_o unreverent_a language_n §_o 210._o when_o we_o be_v go_v to_o our_o disputation_n dr._n pierce_v ask_v whether_o he_o that_o be_v none_o of_o the_o three_o depute_a by_o they_o to_o that_o service_n may_v join_v with_o the_o rest_n and_o we_o tell_v that_o we_o care_v not_o how_o many_o join_v the_o more_o the_o better_o for_o if_o any_o one_o of_o they_o can_v see_v any_o evidence_n of_o truth_n which_o the_o rest_n do_v overlook_v it_o will_v redound_v to_o our_o benefit_n who_o desire_v nothing_o but_o the_o victory_n of_o truth_n §_o 211._o and_o before_o he_o begin_v with_o they_o he_o will_v fain_o have_v have_v one_o bout_n with_o i_o himself_o whereas_o i_o move_v they_o to_o some_o christian_a charity_n to_o all_o those_o conscientious_a christian_n that_o be_v to_o be_v put_v away_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n if_o they_o do_v but_o scruple_n the_o lawfulness_n of_o kneel_v in_o the_o reception_n of_o the_o sacrament_n though_o i_o still_o profess_v to_o they_o that_o i_o hold_v it_o not_o unlawful_a myself_o when_o the_o sacrament_n can_v not_o be_v otherwise_o have_v dr._n pierce_v offer_v himself_o to_o a_o disputation_n to_o prove_v that_o let_v they_o be_v never_o so_o many_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o mercy_n to_o they_o to_o put_v they_o all_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n i_o easy_o perceive_v what_o advantage_n his_o confidence_n and_o passion_n give_v i_o and_o i_o entreat_v he_o to_o try_v his_o skill_n but_o his_o brethren_n will_v not_o give_v he_o leave_v i_o earnest_o entreat_v they_o to_o give_v he_o leave_v but_o to_o try_v one_o argument_n but_o i_o can_v not_o prevail_v with_o they_o be_v wise_a than_o to_o suffer_v his_o passion_n to_o expose_v their_o cause_n to_o laughter_n and_o contempt_n but_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o forbear_v to_o cast_v out_o his_o medium_n and_o tell_v we_o how_o he_o will_v have_v argue_v viz._n that_o they_o that_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n be_v in_o judgement_n against_o kneel_v in_o the_o act_n of_o receive_v do_v receive_v it_o schismatical_o and_o so_o to_o their_o own_o damnation_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o charity_n to_o keep_v they_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n where_o note_n that_o our_o dispute_n be_v only_a whether_o the_o legistator_n shall_v by_o law_n or_o canon_n keep_v they_o away_o and_o not_o whether_o a_o pastor_n suppose_v such_o law_n existent_a shall_v keep_v they_o away_o and_o therefore_o by_o make_v it_o damnable_a schism_n antecedent_o to_o our_o law_n he_o must_v needs_o mean_v that_o some_o foreign_a law_n or_o general_a council_n do_v prove_v it_o schism_n or_o else_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o as_o to_o the_o first_o i_o do_v at_o large_a there_o prove_v that_o the_o twenty_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n at_o nice_a and_o the_o council_n trull_n and_o the_o most_o ancient_a writer_n do_v unanimous_o decree_v against_o kneel_v and_o make_v it_o universal_o unlawful_a and_o that_o by_o apostolical_a tradition_n to_o adore_v kneel_v on_o any_o lord_n day_n in_o the_o year_n and_o on_o any_o other_o day_n between_o easter_n and_o whitsunday_n and_o that_o no_o general_n council_n have_v reverse_v this_o till_o mere_a disuse_n and_o contrary_a custom_n do_v it_o and_o for_o custom_n the_o protestant_a church_n concur_v not_o in_o that_o custom_n nor_o be_v they_o schismatic_n for_o differ_v from_o the_o papist_n and_o other_o that_o do_v so_o nor_o be_v it_o better_o for_o they_o all_o to_o be_v without_o any_o church_n communion_n than_o not_o to_o kneel_v in_o the_o act_n of_o receive_v nor_o do_v the_o papist_n themselves_o make_v every_o man_n a_o schismatic_a that_o follow_v not_o the_o custom_n of_o their_o church_n in_o every_o particular_a gesture_n unless_o he_o separate_v from_o their_o church_n itself_o much_o less_o do_v they_o pronounce_v damnation_n on_o all_o such_o but_o if_o it_o be_v the_o law_n of_o our_o own_o land_n or_o church_n which_o he_o think_v make_v it_o schism_n than_o he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v so_o argue_v for_o sit_v or_o stand_v and_o against_o kneel_v viz._n that_o it_o be_v charity_n to_o make_v a_o law_n be_v keep_v all_o from_o churchy_n communion_n that_o will_v kneel_v because_o when_o such_o a_o law_n be_v make_v it_o be_v damnable_a schism_n to_o kneel_v but_o the_o very_a truth_n be_v i_o perceive_v so_o little_a compassion_n to_o soul_n in_o the_o zealous_a and_o sway_a manager_n of_o these_o controversy_n and_o so_o little_a regard_n of_o the_o scruple_n and_o tenderness_n of_o godly_a people_n who_o be_v afraid_a of_o sin_v a●_n that_o i_o scarce_o think_v among_o protestant_n there_o have_v be_v any_o such_o whether_o they_o will_v have_v abate_v one_o ceremony_n if_o they_o have_v have_v a_o hundred_o more_o to_o keep_v all_o the_o dissenter_n in_o three_o nation_n from_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o ministry_n and_o church_n i_o know_v not_o but_o of_o those_o they_o have_v they_o will_v not_o abate_v one_o which_o make_v i_o oft_o think_v that_o their_o spirit_n be_v much_o more_o like_o the_o papist_n than_o their_o formal_a worship_n and_o discipline_n be_v so_o much_o do_v they_o agree_v in_o destroy_v man_n for_o their_o opinion_n and_o ceremony_n sake_n and_o in_o building_n the_o tomb_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o over-honouring_a the_o dead_a saint_n while_o they_o go_v on_o to_o hate_n and_o destroy_v the_o live_n and_o it_o make_v i_o oft_o remember_v bishop_n hall_n character_n of_o a_o hyprocrite_n who_o bow_v at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n and_o swear_v by_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o will_v set_v all_o the_o world_n on_o fire_n for_o a_o circumstance_n and_o it_o make_v i_o remember_v what_o that_o learned_a godly_a minister_n mr_n spinage_n have_v oft_o tell_v i_o and_o many_o other_o and_o be_v still_o ready_a to_o justify_v upon_o oath_n that_o be_v heretofore_o familiar_a with_o this_o mr._n thomas_n pierce_n and_o say_v once_o to_o he_o these_o man_n that_o you_o so_o abhor_v be_v very_o godly_a man_n and_o have_v much_o communion_n with_o god_n he_o break_v out_o into_o this_o answer_n a_fw-la pou_fw-fr on_o this_o communion_n with_o god_n and_o it_o make_v i_o think_v of_o augustine_n description_n of_o the_o sottish_a worldling_n that_o have_v far_o rather_o thus_o be_v one_o star_n few_o in_o heaven_n than_o one_o cow_n or_o one_o tree_n the_o few_o in_o their_o ground_n 134._o so_o have_v these_o man_n rather_o one_o thousand_o eight_o hundred_o godly_a
name_n of_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o so_o by_o the_o name_n they_o seduce_v man_n mind_n to_o think_v that_o this_o be_v indeed_o the_o use_n of_o the_o key_n which_o god_n have_v put_v into_o the_o church_n hand_n 3._o hereby_o they_o great_o encourage_v the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n who_o set_v up_o such_o court_n for_o probate_a of_o will_n and_o cause_n of_o matrimony_n and_o rule_v the_o church_n in_o a_o secular_a manner_n though_o many_o of_o they_o confess_v that_o direct_o the_o church_n have_v no_o force_v power_n and_o this_o they_o call_v the_o church_n power_n and_o spiritual_a government_n and_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n and_o say_v that_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o king_n and_o that_o no_o king_n can_v in_o conscience_n restrain_v they_o of_o it_o but_o must_v protect_v they_o in_o it_o and_o so_o they_o set_v up_o imperium_fw-la in_o imperio_fw-la and_o as_o bishop_n beadle_n say_v of_o ireland_n the_o pope_n have_v a_o kingdom_n there_o in_o the_o kingdom_n great_a than_o the_o king_n against_o which_o ludou._n molinaeus_n have_v write_v at_o large_a in_o two_o or_o three_o treatise_n so_o that_o when_o the_o papal_a power_n in_o england_n be_v cast_v down_o and_o their_o court_n subject_v to_o the_o king_n and_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n form_v it_o be_v under_o the_o name_n of_o ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a power_n that_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v in_o the_o king_n who_o yet_o claim_v no_o proper_a spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a power_n so_o great_o be_v these_o term_n abuse_v and_o so_o be_v they_o still_o as_o apply_v to_o our_o bishop_n court_n so_o that_o the_o king_n be_v say_v by_o we_o to_o be_v chief_a governor_n in_o all_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a because_o coercive_a power_n in_o church_n matter_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o magistrate_n be_v possess_v and_o claim_v by_o the_o clergy_n and_o in_o all_o popish_a kingdom_n the_o king_n be_v but_o half_a king_n through_o these_o usurpation_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o for_o we_o to_o exercise_n the_o same_o kind_n of_o power_n mix_v with_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o key_n and_o that_o by_o the_o same_o name_n be_v great_o to_o countenance_v the_o usurper_n §_o 352._o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o church_n claim_v no_o coercive_a power_n but_o as_o grant_v they_o by_o the_o king_n or_o that_o it_o be_v the_o magistrate_n that_o annex_v mulct_n and_o penalty_n and_o not_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v 1._o they_o persuade_v the_o magistrate_n that_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v so_o 2._o force_n be_v not_o a_o mere_a accident_n but_o confess_v by_o they_o to_o be_v the_o very_a life_n of_o their_o government_n it_o be_v that_o which_o bring_v people_n to_o their_o court_n and_o enforce_v all_o their_o precept_n and_o cause_v obedience_n to_o they_o so_o that_o it_o be_v part_n of_o the_o very_a constitution_n of_o their_o government_n and_o as_o to_o fee_n and_o commutation_n of_o penance_n pecuniary_a mulct_n be_v thus_o impose_v by_o themselves_o 3._o their_o very_a court_n and_o officer_n be_v of_o a_o secular_a form_n 4._o the_o magistrate_n be_v but_o the_o executioner_n of_o their_o sentence_n he_o must_v grant_v out_o a_o writ_n and_o imprison_v a_o man_n quatenus_fw-la excommunicate_a without_o sit_v in_o judgement_n upon_o the_o cause_n himself_o and_o try_v the_o person_n according_a to_o his_o accusation_n and_o what_o a_o dishonour_n do_v these_o man_n put_v on_o magistrate_n that_o make_v they_o their_o executioner_n to_o imprison_v those_o who_o they_o condemn_v invudita_fw-la causa_fw-la at_o a_o venture_n be_v it_o right_n or_o wrong_n so_o much_o of_o the_o nonconformist_n charge_v against_o the_o english_a prelacy_n §_o 353._o by_o this_o you_o may_v see_v what_o they_o answer_v to_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o conformist_n as_o 1._o to_o the_o willing_a conformist_n who_o plead_v a_o jur_fw-fr divinum_fw-la they_o say_v that_o if_o all_o that_o gersom_a bucer_n didoclavius_n blondell_n salmasius_n parker_n baines_n etc._n etc._n have_v say_v against_o episcopacy_n itself_o be_v certain_o confute_v yet_o it_o be_v quite_o another_o thing_n that_o be_v call_v episcopacy_n by_o they_o that_o plead_v it_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la if_o 1._o bishop_n of_o single_a church_n with_o a_o presbytery_n under_o they_o 2._o and_o general_a bishop_n over_o these_o bishop_n be_v both_o prove_v jure_fw-la divine_n yet_o our_o diocesan_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v contra_fw-la jus_o divinum_fw-la 2._o to_o the_o latitudinarian_o and_o involuntary_a conformist_n who_o plead_v that_o no_o church-government_n as_o to_o the_o form_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n they_o answer_v 1._o this_o be_v to_o condemn_v themselves_o and_o say_v because_o no_o form_n be_v of_o god_n institution_n therefore_o i_o will_v declare_v that_o the_o episcopal_a form_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n for_o this_o be_v part_n of_o their_o subscription_n or_o declaration_n when_o they_o profess_v assent_n and_o confent_a to_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n and_o ordination_n and_o one_o thing_n in_o it_o be_v in_o these_o word_n with_o which_o the_o book_n begin_v it_o be_v evident_a to_o all_o man_n diligent_o read_v holy_a scripture_n and_o ancient_a author_n that_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o have_v be_v these_o order_n of_o minister_n in_o christ_n church_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n which_o office_n be_v evermore_o have_v in_o such_o reverend_a estimation_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o here_o they_o declare_v that_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v not_o only_o distinct_a degree_n but_o distinct_a order_n and_o office_n and_o that_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n as_o evident_a by_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n when_o yet_o many_o of_o the_o very_a papist_n schoolman_n do_v deny_v it_o and_o the_o collect_v in_o the_o order_v of_o priest_n run_v thus_o almighty_n god_n giver_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n who_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n have_v appoint_v divers_a order_n of_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n so_o that_o in_o plain_a english_a they_o declare_v that_o episcopacy_n even_a as_o a_o distinct_a order_n office_n and_o function_n for_o all_o these_o word_n be_v there_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n because_o they_o believe_v that_o no_o form_n be_v so_o appoint_v 2._o that_o which_o mr._n stillingfleet_n call_v a_o form_n be_v none_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o government_n itself_o nor_o the_o office_n in_o the_o church_n he_o grant_v that_o 1._o worship_v assembly_n be_v of_o divine_a appointment_n 2._o that_o every_o one_o of_o these_o must_v have_v one_o or_o more_o pastor_n who_o have_v power_n in_o their_o order_n to_o teach_v they_o and_o go_v before_o they_o in_o worship_n and_o spiritual_o guide_v or_o govern_v they_o but_o 1._o whether_o a_o church_n shall_v have_v one_o pastor_n or_o more_o 2._o whether_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o some_o thing_n subject_a to_o another_o 3._o whether_o constant_a synod_n shall_v be_v hold_v for_o concord_n of_o associated_n church_n 4._o whether_o in_o these_o synod_n one_o shall_v be_v moderator_n and_o how_o long_o and_o with_o what_o authority_n not_o unreasonable_a these_o he_o think_v be_v leave_v undetermined_a and_o i_o be_o of_o his_o mind_n suppose_v general_a rule_n to_o guide_v they_o by_o as_o he_o do_v but_o the_o matter_n and_o manner_n of_o church-discipline_n be_v of_o god_n appointment_n and_o the_o nature_n and_o end_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n and_o the_o office_n of_o pastor_n as_o well_o as_o the_o form_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a it_o be_v past_a doubt_n that_o nothing_o which_o subvert_v any_o of_o these_o be_v lawful_a and_o indeed_o if_o proper_o no_o form_n of_o government_n be_v institute_v by_o god_n than_o no_o form_n of_o a_o church_n neither_o for_o the_o form_n of_o government_n be_v the_o form_n of_o a_o church_n consider_v in_o sensu_fw-la politico_fw-la and_o not_o as_o a_o mere_a community_n and_o then_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v not_o of_o god_n make_v quest._n who_o then_o make_v it_o either_o another_o church_n make_v this_o church_n and_o then_o what_o be_v that_o church_n and_o who_o make_v its_o form_n and_o so_o ad_fw-la originem_fw-la or_o not_o church_n make_v it_o if_o no_o church_n make_v the_o church_n of_o england_n quo_fw-la jure_fw-la or_o what_o be_v its_o authority_n and_o honour_n if_o the_o king_n make_v it_o be_v he_o a_o member_n of_o a_o church_n or_o not_o if_o yea_o 1._o there_o be_v then_o a_o church-form_n before_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o who_o make_v that_o church_n usque_fw-la ad_fw-la originem_fw-la if_o the_o king_n that_o make_v it_o be_v no_o member_n of_o a_o church_n than_o he_o that_o be_v no_o member_n of_o a_o church_n may_v institute_v a_o church_n form_n but_o quo_fw-la jure_fw-la and_o with_o what_o
it_o expose_v the_o magistrate_n to_o the_o reproach_n or_o contempt_n of_o the_o subject_n and_o so_o shake_v the_o very_a frame_n of_o the_o kingdom_n or_o government_n the_o magistrate_n honour_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v more_o necessary_a than_o his_o dishonour_n and_o shame_n can_v be_v to_o the_o order_n of_o that_o particular_a church_n 2._o and_o a_o suspending_a of_o the_o pastor_n act_n of_o deliver_v he_o the_o sacrament_n with_o a_o humble_a admonition_n may_v better_o attain_v the_o lawful_a end_n 3._o christ_n himself_o have_v oft_o teach_v we_o this_o exposition_n of_o his_o law_n when_o he_o do_v eat_v with_o publican_n and_o sinner_n he_o prefer_v their_o repentance_n before_o the_o positive_a order_n of_o not_o be_v familiar_a with_o such_o as_o be_v never_o intend_v in_o such_o a_o case_n when_o the_o disciple_n pluck_v the_o ear_n of_o corn_n and_o himself_o cure_v the_o sick_a on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n he_o prove_v that_o the_o positive_a law_n of_o rest_n be_v intend_v to_o give_v place_n to_o the_o moral_a law_n of_o necessity_n and_o charity_n and_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o instance_n of_o david_n and_o the_o officiate_a priest_n and_o twice_o send_v the_o contrary_a mind_a pharisee_n to_o learn_v what_o that_o mean_v i_o will_v have_v mercy_n a_o natural_a duty_n and_o not_o at_o that_o time_n sacrifice_v a_o positive_a institution_n and_o they_o that_o will_v pretend_v a_o positive_a law_n of_o order_n for_o a_o congregation_n to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o king_n and_o judge_n and_o magistrate_n and_o make_v they_o contemptible_a and_o so_o unable_a to_o govern_v do_v pharisaical_o set_v up_o positives_n against_o natural_a moral_a duty_n by_o which_o mean_v pope_n and_o patriarch_n and_o other_o prelate_n have_v wrong_v prince_n and_o trouble_v the_o world_n too_o much_o already_o do_v you_o no_o better_o justify_v the_o common_a slander_n how_o much_o the_o nonconformist_n be_v against_o the_o honour_n of_o magistrate_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o know_v some_o nonconformist_n think_v as_o you_o but_o other_o do_v not_o see_v the_o old_a nonconformist_n judgement_n against_o excommunicate_v king_n in_o a_o latin_a treat_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la &_o genuina_fw-la christ._n relig._n authore_fw-la ministro_fw-la anglo_n an._n 1618._o pag._n 280._o 4._o moreover_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n on_o prince_n and_o ruler_n will_v less_o consist_v with_o the_o honour_n that_o be_v due_a to_o they_o than_o the_o sentence_n itself_o for_o to_o avoid_v they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v ashamed_a to_o turn_v away_o from_o not_o to_o be_v familiar_a with_o they_o to_o keep_v they_o out_o of_o the_o church_n at_o all_o god_n special_a church-worship_n be_v thing_n that_o we_o can_v do_v without_o neglect_n of_o much_o of_o our_o duty_n to_o they_o we_o must_v attend_v they_o and_o obey_v they_o with_o honour_n i_o know_v a_o general_n council_n have_v forbid_v bishop_n to_o carry_v themselves_o with_o lowliness_n at_o the_o table_n and_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o prince_n and_o great_a man_n and_o i_o know_v that_o some_o think_v that_o excommunicate_a prince_n have_v forfeit_v their_o honour_n and_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o dishonour_v they_o yea_o and_o all_o wicked_a prince_n who_o deserve_v excommunication_n and_o i_o know_v mr._n hooker_n in_o his_o eccles._n polit._n say_v that_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o a_o prince_n that_o be_v the_o head_n of_o a_o christian_a church_n be_v himself_o a_o christian_n but_o all_o these_o be_v error_n tend_v to_o the_o subversion_n of_o order_n and_o government_n and_o the_o high_a power_n who_o god_n spirit_n command_v we_o to_o honour_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o be_v nero_n and_o the_o roman_a senate_n and_o other_o enemy_n of_o christianity_n even_o idolatrous_a heathen_n and_o if_o these_o must_v be_v honour_v much_o more_o a_o christian_a king_n or_o judge_n who_o be_v he_o a_o private_a man_n may_v deserve_v a_o excommunication_n at_o least_o i_o hope_v that_o the_o writ_n de_fw-fr excommunicato_fw-la capiendo_fw-la shall_v not_o be_v issue_v out_o against_o the_o king_n or_o his_o judge_n though_o the_o canon_n 65._o command_v that_o every_o six_o month_n in_o cathedral_n and_o parish-church_n the_o excommunication_n be_v declare_v of_o those_o that_o obstinate_o refuse_v to_o frequent_v the_o divine_a service_n establish_v by_o public_a authority_n and_o those_o especial_o of_o the_o better_a sort_n and_o condition_n who_o for_o notorious_a contumacy_n or_o other_o notable_a crime_n stand_v excommunicate_a etc._n etc._n though_o the_o better_a sort_n be_v single_v out_o especial_o for_o the_o sentence_n and_o shame_n yet_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v judge_n and_o sheriff_n who_o shall_v judge_v and_o apprehend_v they_o prop._n id_fw-la not_o silence_n suspend_v etc._n etc._n arbitrary_a but_o by_o a_o know_a law_n strict_a no_o bishop_n do_v or_o can_v do_v so_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o law_n or_o canon_n to_o that_o purpose_n that_o i_o know_v of_o answ._n i_o be_o loath_a to_o name_n justances_n jest_n it_o provoke_v mr._n potter_n be_v dead_a dr._n willes_n of_o kingsion_n now_o chaplain_n to_o the_o king_n they_o say_v i_o be_o sure_a have_v complain_v much_o of_o his_o suspension_n at_o shadwell_n i_o remember_v bishop_n reighnolds_n be_v so_o sensible_a of_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o provision_n that_o at_o the_o savoy_n treaty_n he_o be_v most_o earnest_a to_o have_v it_o insert_v and_o insist_v on_o it_o may_v be_v it_o be_v minister_n ignorance_n in_o the_o law_n that_o make_v they_o when_o suspend_v not_o know_v where_o to_o seek_v for_o a_o remedy_n unless_o in_o vain_a or_o to_o their_o undo_n postscript_n if_o sacrament_n be_v leave_v free_a etc._n etc._n it_o will_v take_v in_o the_o independent_o etc._n etc._n strict_a if_o independent_o may_v be_v take_v in_o by_o we_o now_o why_o do_v not_o you_o take_v they_o in_o when_o you_o be_v in_o power_n but_o preach_v and_o write_v so_o much_o as_o you_o do_v against_o toleration_n of_o they_o but_o you_o that_o will_v have_v we_o dispense_v to_o all_o thing_n now_o will_v yourselves_o dispense_v with_o nothing_o then_o answ._n it_o be_v pity_n that_o matter_n of_o public_a fact_n shall_v be_v so_o much_o unknown_a and_o that_o when_o such_o inference_n follow_v 1._o i_o be_v never_o in_o power_n nay_o my_o lot_n never_o fall_v out_o to_o be_v of_o any_o side_n that_o be_v uppermost_a in_o church_n matter_n nor_o in_o state-usurped_n power_n but_o i_o always_o be_v of_o the_o under_o side_n 2._o it_o be_v the_o toleration_n of_o all_o sect_n unlimited_o that_o i_o write_v and_o preach_v against_o and_o not_o that_o i_o remember_v of_o mere_a independent_o 3._o those_o that_o do_v oppose_v the_o toleration_n of_o independent_o of_o my_o acquaintance_n do_v not_o deny_v they_o the_o liberty_n of_o independency_n but_o oppose_v separation_n or_o their_o gather_v other_o church_n out_o of_o parish-church_n that_o have_v faithful_a minister_n if_o they_o will_v have_v take_v parish-church_n on_o independent_a principle_n without_o separation_n neither_o i_o nor_o my_o acquaintance_n do_v oppose_v they_o no_o nor_o their_o endeavour_n to_o reform_v such_o church_n 4._o the_o case_n great_o differ_v for_o a_o independent_a to_o refuse_v parish-church_n when_o no_o ceremony_n no_o liturgy_n no_o oath_n or_o subscription_n be_v require_v of_o he_o which_o he_o scruple_v be_v not_o like_o his_o refuse_v oath_n subscription_n liturgy_n ceremony_n etc._n etc._n 5._o but_o in_o a_o word_n grant_v we_o but_o as_o much_o and_o take_v we_o but_o in_o as_o we_o grant_v to_o and_o take_v in_o the_o independent_o and_o we_o be_v content_a make_v this_o agreement_n and_o all_o be_v end_v we_o desire_v no_o more_o of_o you_o we_o never_o deny_v the_o independent_o the_o liberty_n of_o preach_v lecture_n as_o often_o as_o they_o will_v nor_o yet_o the_o liberty_n of_o take_v parish-church_n they_o common_o have_v presentation_n and_o the_o public_a maintenance_n and_o no_o subscription_n declaration_n liturgy_n or_o ceremony_n be_v impose_v on_o they_o again_o i_o say_v i_o ask_v you_o no_o more_o liberty_n than_o be_v give_v the_o independent_o by_o their_o brethren_n call_v presbyterian_o let_v your_o grant_n now_o agree_v but_o with_o your_o intimation_n 6._o and_o how_o then_o say_v you_o we_o will_v dispense_v with_o nothing_o for_o my_o part_n and_o those_o of_o my_o mind_n we_o never_o impose_v nor_o endeavour_v to_o impose_v any_o thing_n on_o any_o man_n as_o necessary_a to_o ordination_n ministry_n or_o communion_n but_o the_o own_n of_o the_o scripture_n generally_n and_o the_o creed_n lord_n prayer_n and_o decalogue_n and_o sacrament_n particular_o with_o that_o measure_n of_o understand_v they_o and_o ability_n to_o teach_v they_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o a_o minister_n and_o fidelity_n therein_o
disrelish_v the_o practice_n and_o assertion_n of_o some_o in_o unchurch_v all_o beside_o themselves_o he_o begin_v to_o be_v provoke_v and_o press_v much_o in_o spirit_n to_o consider_v the_o ground_n of_o separate_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o baptism_n and_o in_o that_o survey_n still_o their_o weakness_n which_o appear_v the_o more_o by_o read_v you_o mr._n io._n goodwin_n and_o homes_n book_n of_o baptism_n beget_v in_o he_o not_o only_o a_o sight_n of_o weakness_n in_o his_o ground_n about_o separate_a but_o weaken_v his_o confidence_n as_o to_o the_o oppose_a of_o infant_n baptism_n in_o this_o time_n as_o thing_n appear_v to_o he_o he_o be_v free_a and_o open_a heart_a be_v ready_a to_o express_v his_o thought_n to_o those_o he_o converse_v with_o who_o be_v rigid_a about_o separation_n still_o persuade_v he_o these_o new_a thought_n be_v satan_n temptation_n to_o hinder_v he_o in_o the_o lord_n work_n which_o occasion_v much_o prayer_n and_o fast_v and_o prayer_n that_o if_o these_o thought_n be_v not_o of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n they_o may_v die_v from_o his_o soul_n but_o still_o they_o increase_v and_o come_v with_o such_o light_n and_o power_n argumentative_a from_o scripture_n detect_v his_o former_a principle_n as_o to_o separation_n in_o this_o interim_n he_o converse_v with_o divers_a minister_n in_o town_n as_o mr._n goodwin_n book_n mr._n manton_n dr._n reignold'_v about_o the_o meaning_n of_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 13_o etc._n etc._n his_o thought_n still_o carry_v he_o on_o till_o he_o have_v form_v they_o into_o three_o sheet_n of_o paper_n but_o all_o the_o way_n it_o be_v a_o fight_n with_o temptation_n as_o often_o be_v declare_v yet_o his_o light_n plain_o evince_v the_o evil_a of_o saint_n divide_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o baptism_n although_o it_o shall_v stand_v good_a baptism_n shall_v belong_v only_o to_o believer_n and_o as_o i_o conceive_v those_o temptation_n partly_o occasion_v by_o friend_n who_o out_o of_o their_o love_n will_v charge_v he_o to_o take_v heed_n for_o some_o roo●_n of_o bitterness_n or_o other_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o these_o thought_n and_o some_o carnal_a end_n he_o have_v and_o be_v weary_a of_o christ_n yoke_n and_o the_o woe_n to_o backslider_n will_v be_v his_o portion_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o never_o any_o own_v these_o principle_n that_o forsake_v they_o but_o they_o become_v sad_a object_n of_o god_n displeasure_n satan_n sit_v in_o when_o these_o do_v occasion_n great_a distress_n and_o search_n of_o heart_n many_o fear_n prayer_n and_o tear_n before_o temptation_n that_o he_o be_v not_o sincere_a which_o be_v heighten_v by_o one_o thought_n that_o he_o have_v espy_v in_o his_o heart_n when_o he_o be_v amid_o these_o thought_n namely_o that_o to_o break_v the_o neck_n of_o those_o strai●_n principle_n which_o will_v not_o permit_v any_o to_o marry_v but_o to_o those_o in_o their_o own_o way_n will_v be_v a_o freedom_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o daughter_n in_o their_o marriage_n who_o be_v but_o now_o ten_o and_o eleven_o year_n of_o age_n the_o fear_n lest_o the_o have_v of_o this_o in_o his_o thought_n shall_v in_o answer_n to_o this_o argue_v the_o predominancy_n of_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o flesh_n have_v fill_v his_o soul_n with_o great_a distress_n which_o i_o declare_v to_o you_o as_o a_o spiritual_a physician_n that_o you_o may_v know_v the_o whole_a case_n after_o seek_v god_n a_o little_a help_n be_v attain_v in_o this_o and_o he_o receive_v some_o testimony_n of_o conscience_n that_o this_o thought_n be_v not_o the_o move_a cause_n of_o his_o change_n of_o mind_n or_o any_o predominant_a end_n only_o a_o after_o thought_n which_o have_v some_o encouragement_n in_o it_o when_o this_o temptation_n be_v over_o then_o as_o bitter_a fear_n about_o apostasy_n all_o those_o text_n seem_v to_o apply_v themselves_o to_o he_o as_o speak_v of_o a_o evil_a heart_n of_o unbelief_n in_o depart_v from_o god_n of_o be_v cast_v out_o as_o a_o wither_a branch_n and_o these_o attend_v with_o tear_n and_o wound_n of_o spirit_n if_o he_o do_v cease_v from_o draw_v up_o his_o argument_n then_o be_v shall_v have_v ease_n but_o the_o light_n of_o they_o be_v so_o press_v upon_o his_o mind_n that_o he_o can_v not_o forbear_v this_o have_v be_v his_o life_n for_o these_o eight_o or_o nine_o month_n have_v declare_v his_o argument_n the_o people_n to_o who_o he_o be_v elder_a they_o grow_v offend_v and_o disturb_v if_o he_o have_v any_o thought_n of_o return_v to_o mr._n goodwin_n church_n again_o then_o nothing_o but_o horror_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o flame_a sword_n in_o his_o spirit_n be_v not_o that_o a_o ground_n that_o he_o ought_v not_o return_v thither_o he_o find_v most_o ease_n in_o his_o tender_a and_o fair_a entreaty_n of_o the_o people_n he_o be_v now_o with_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o separate_v to_o the_o further_a prejudice_n of_o their_o soul_n have_v a_o little_a ease_n about_o the_o fear_n of_o apostasy_n by_o find_v by_o experience_n that_o his_o soul_n never_o go_v out_o in_o such_o strong_a desire_n and_o high_a praising_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o earnest_n desire_v to_o serve_v he_o in_o his_o gospel_n and_o have_v in_o this_o time_n more_o abundant_o than_o ever_o find_v his_o soul_n empty_v of_o self-esteem_a and_o sense_n of_o his_o need_n of_o christ_n nourish_v and_o cherish_n after_o this_o the_o next_o temptation_n which_o now_o he_o wrestle_v with_o be_v hard_a thought_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o be_v hard_o not_o easy_a to_o be_v entreat_v etc._n etc._n these_o sore_a temptation_n have_v make_v he_o ready_a to_o saint_n say_v sometime_o o_o that_o he_o be_v settle_v in_o his_o former_a thought_n against_o infant_n baptism_n and_o can_v practise_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n as_o he_o have_v do_v the_o other_o to_o this_o it_o be_v suggest_v no_o now_o it_o shall_v be_v hide_v from_o he_o he_o receive_v not_o the_o truth_n in_o the_o love_n of_o it_o etc._n etc._n and_o heb._n 12._o 17._o make_v use_n of_o to_o wound_v he_o that_o he_o obtain_v not_o the_o blessing_n though_o he_o seek_v it_o careful_o with_o tear_n these_o thought_n occasion_v strong_a cry_n and_o tear_n and_o great_a distress_n of_o soul_n yet_o sir_n take_v notice_n that_o all_o this_o while_n his_o now_o argument_n to_o one_o communion_n with_o all_o saint_n as_o saint_n be_v never_o question_v in_o his_o judgement_n but_o all_o admit_v to_o he_o nay_o all_o that_o have_v see_v they_o who_o be_v divers_a of_o the_o re-baptism_n have_v not_o any_o of_o they_o as_o yet_o offer_v any_o thing_n to_o detect_v they_o but_o contrariwise_o they_o have_v have_v their_o force_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o some_o now_o dear_a sir_n i_o hope_v you_o understand_v my_o scribble_n the_o end_n of_o all_o be_v to_o entreat_v your_o help_n as_o one_o that_o christ_n have_v set_v in_o his_o church_n for_o the_o edify_a and_o establish_v of_o his_o member_n judge_v you_o faithful_a and_o one_o of_o a_o thousand_o in_o experience_n i_o have_v take_v the_o boldness_n to_o entreat_v your_o answer_n to_o the_o follow_a particular_n 1._o whether_o god_n do_v use_v to_o leave_v any_o of_o his_o servant_n to_o such_o bitter_a temptation_n when_o they_o be_v about_o a_o service_n acceptable_a to_o he_o if_o so_o what_o his_o end_n may_v be_v in_o it_o 2._o whether_o these_o distress_n of_o spirit_n can_v be_v any_o demonstration_n that_o his_o former_a practice_n and_o principle_n about_o restrain_v communion_n to_o after_o baptism_n nor_o more_o please_v to_o god_n spirit_n which_o have_v seem_v to_o be_v prove_v and_o so_o dependant_a these_o latter_a argument_n about_o largeness_n in_o that_o kind_n 3._o whether_o consider_v his_o former_a relation_n to_o mr._n goodwin_n congregation_n from_o who_o he_o withdraw_v upon_o the_o thought_n he_o have_v of_o unlawfulness_n to_o communicate_v with_o unbaptised_a person_n which_o now_o he_o see_v the_o vanity_n of_o it_o be_v not_o now_o his_o duty_n to_o return_v thither_o and_o if_o so_o then_o 1._o what_o shall_v be_v the_o reason_n that_o his_o conscience_n though_o very_o tender_a in_o other_o thing_n shall_v have_v little_a or_o no_o sense_n of_o that_o as_o his_o duty_n and_o 2._o what_o shall_v then_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o when_o he_o have_v have_v any_o thought_n tend_v that_o way_n such_o terror_n like_o a_o flame_a sword_n shall_v pierce_v his_o soul_n 4._o whether_o have_v be_v a_o instrument_n to_o draw_v so_o many_o together_o into_o this_o way_n it_o be_v not_o rather_o his_o duty_n to_o continue_v with_o they_o apply_v himself_o in_o all_o way_n of_o love_n and_o forbearance_n to_o enlarge_v their_o spirit_n which_o he_o judge_v his_o duty_n because_o he_o find_v a_o sensible_a ease_n in_o his_o soul_n upon_o such_o resolution_n
be_v as_o dear_a to_o we_o as_o any_o other_o and_o that_o if_o i_o be_v a_o member_n of_o mr._n tombeis_n church_n if_o he_o will_v permit_v i_o i_o will_v live_v obedient_o under_o his_o ministry_n allow_v i_o the_o liberty_n of_o my_o conscience_n i_o hope_v god_n be_v work_v for_o our_o unity_n and_o peace_n i_o have_v be_v long_o preach_v of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n contain_v all_o true_a christian_n as_o member_n and_o the_o last_o week_n save_o one_o mr._n tomb_n come_v to_o the_o rebaptise_v church_n at_o bewdley_n and_o preach_v on_o the_o same_o subbject_n and_o so_o excellent_o well_o as_o i_o hear_v for_o unity_n among_o all_o true_a christian_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n with_o your_o husband_n argument_n that_o i_o much_o rejoice_v to_o hear_v of_o it_o though_o i_o hear_v some_o of_o his_o people_n be_v offend_v and_o now_o that_o this_o shall_v be_v second_v with_o your_o husband_n be_v peaceable_a argument_n put_v i_o in_o some_o hope_n of_o a_o little_a more_o heal_a i_o have_v strong_a hope_n that_o if_o i_o be_v in_o london_n i_o shall_v persuade_v such_o as_o your_o husband_n and_o mr._n john_n goodwin_n and_o many_o a_o honest_a presbyterian_a minister_n as_o great_a a_o distance_n as_o seem_v to_o be_v between_o they_o all_o to_o come_v yet_o together_o and_o live_v in_o holy_a communion_n but_o be_v sure_a god_n will_v drive_v we_o together_o before_o he_o have_v do_v with_o we_o live_v member_n will_v smart_v by_o distance_n and_o be_v impatient_a till_o the_o wound_n be_v close_v what_o a_o damp_n be_v upon_o the_o spirit_n of_o those_o christian_n that_o can_v separate_v interpretative_o from_o a_o thousand_o part_n to_o one_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n the_o papist_n will_v desire_v no_o better_a sport_n nor_o the_o infidel_n neither_o than_o to_o reduce_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o antipaede_v baptist_n or_o the_o baptize_v at_o age_n and_o so_o to_o deny_v he_o to_o have_v have_v any_o visible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n that_o we_o can_v prove_v for_o so_o many_o year_n will_v they_o have_v hold_v communion_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o or_o will_v they_o not_o if_o they_o have_v live_v in_o those_o time_n if_o they_o will_v then_o why_o not_o with_o we_o also_o that_o be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n be_v it_o a_o duty_n then_o and_o be_v it_o unlawful_a now_o or_o be_v they_o respecter_n of_o person_n if_o they_o will_v not_o in_o all_o those_o age_n have_v hold_v communion_n with_o the_o visible_a church_n what_o will_v they_o have_v do_v but_o separate_v from_o the_o body_n and_o so_o from_o the_o head_n and_o cast_v off_o christ_n in_o all_o his_o member_n and_o take_v he_o to_o be_v a_o head_n without_o a_o body_n which_o be_v no_o head_n and_o so_o no_o christ_n what_o will_v they_o have_v do_v but_o deny_v his_o power_n and_o love_n and_o truth_n and_o consequent_o his_o redemption_n and_o his_o office_n have_v he_o come_v at_o the_o end_n of_o four_o thousand_o year_n since_o the_o creation_n to_o redeem_v the_o world_n that_o lie_v so_o long_o in_o darkness_n and_o have_v he_o make_v such_o wonderful_a preparation_n for_o his_o church_n by_o his_o life_n and_o miracle_n and_o blood_n and_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n and_o promise_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o that_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v a_o everlasting_a kingdom_n and_o his_o dominion_n endure_v from_o generation_n to_o generation_n and_o yet_o after_o all_o this_o shall_v he_o have_v a_o church_n even_o as_o the_o seeker_n say_v but_o for_o a_o age_n or_o two_o for_o doubtless_o though_o where_o heathen_n be_v the_o neighbour_n of_o the_o church_n many_o be_v baptize_v at_o age_n yet_o no_o man_n can_v name_v or_o prove_v a_o society_n or_o i_o think_v a_o person_n against_o infant_n baptism_n for_o one_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o year_n at_o least_o if_o not_o one_o thousand_o four_o hundred_o and_o for_o many_o age_n no_o other_o ordinary_o baptize_v but_o infant_n if_o christ_n have_v no_o church_n then_o where_o be_v his_o wisdom_n his_o love_n and_o his_o power_n what_o be_v become_v of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o redemption_n and_o his_o catholic_n church_n that_o be_v to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n that_o man_n that_o can_v believe_v that_o christ_n have_v no_o church_n for_o so_o long_a time_n or_o any_o one_o age_n since_o his_o ascension_n must_v turn_v a_o infidel_n and_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v christ_n if_o he_o be_v a_o rational_a man._n do_v all_o the_o gospel_n precept_n of_o love_n and_o holy_a communion_n cease_v as_o soon_o as_o infant_n baptism_n prevail_v doubtless_o though_o it_o be_v be_v his_o ordinance_n christ_n never_o lay_v so_o great_a a_o stress_n on_o the_o outward_a wash_v as_o divider_n do_v whenever_o baptism_n be_v mention_v in_o scripture_n it_o mean_v the_o engagement_n of_o the_o person_n to_o jesus_n christ_n by_o solemn_a covenant_n which_o wash_v be_v appoint_v to_o solemnize_v and_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 13._o do_v plain_o mean_a that_o one_o holy_a spirit_n which_o be_v usual_o give_v to_o the_o baptise_a either_o in_o or_o near_o their_o outward_a baptism_n do_v inward_o animate_v all_o the_o body_n and_o unite_v they_o and_o assimilate_v they_o and_o prove_v they_o member_n constantine_n the_o great_a be_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o generation_n maintain_v holiness_n and_o peace_n when_o the_o pastor_n be_v some_o corrupter_n and_o some_o divider_n and_o will_v have_v break_v all_o in_o piece_n but_o for_o he_o he_o ordinary_o preach_v or_o make_v holy_a prayer_n and_o speech_n in_o meeting_n and_o yet_o be_v never_o baptize_v all_o this_o while_n till_o near_a death_n and_o none_o ever_o scrupule_v his_o communion_n i_o will_v know_v of_o the_o divider_n why_o they_o shall_v think_v baptism_n more_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v than_o the_o other_o sacrament_n the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o the_o ancient_a church_n do_v purposely_o conceal_v the_o lord_n supper_n from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o catechuman_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v they_o judge_v not_o the_o belief_n of_o it_o essential_a to_o a_o church_n member_n yet_o i_o know_v the_o great_a thing_n mean_v by_o the_o word_n baptism_n in_o scripture_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church-membership_n of_o the_o adult_n that_o be_v the_o giving_z up_o ourselves_o to_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n in_o covenant_n but_o the_o sign_n be_v only_o necessary_a as_o a_o duty_n but_o not_o as_o a_o mean_n without_o which_o the_o thing_n can_v be_v have_v this_o be_v voluminous_o prove_v against_o the_o papist_n with_o who_o the_o contrary_a mind_a do_v comply_v circumcision_n in_o the_o wilderness_n be_v separate_v from_o church-membership_n and_o communion_n and_o be_v the_o outward_a part_n of_o baptism_n more_o necessary_a under_o the_o gospel_n which_o set_v less_o by_o external_o and_o where_o god_n that_o be_v a_o spirit_n will_v be_v worship_v in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n and_o where_o neither_o circumcision_n nor_o un-uncircumcision_a avail_v any_o thing_n but_o a_o new_a creature_n and_o faith_n that_o work_v by_o love_n but_o our_o main_a argument_n against_o they_o be_v that_o no_o true_a definition_n can_v be_v give_v of_o baptism_n that_o will_v not_o agree_v with_o infant-baptism_n if_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v unlawful_a be_v it_o prove_v a_o unmeet_a age_n it_o will_v never_o prove_v the_o baptism_n null_a but_o i_o do_v but_o go_v beside_o your_o expectation_n i_o suppose_v in_o all_o this_o which_o be_v occasion_v by_o your_o husband_n paper_n and_o the_o main_a cause_n i_o shall_v therefore_o come_v at_o last_o to_o your_o case_n but_o will_v mr._n lamb_n regard_v the_o judgement_n of_o one_o that_o differ_v from_o he_o as_o i_o do_v you_o know_v according_a to_o my_o judgement_n what_o i_o must_v advise_v he_o to_o but_o though_o still_o it_o be_v my_o judgement_n that_o infant_n of_o believer_n shall_v be_v solemn_o give_v up_o to_o christ_n by_o baptism_n yet_o i_o shall_v deal_v as_o impartial_o as_o i_o can_v and_o put_v myself_o in_o mr._n l_n case_n and_o suppose_v i_o be_v of_o his_o opinion_n against_o infant-baptism_n i_o shall_v answer_v your_o particular_a question_n to_o the_o two_o first_o i_o answer_v 1._o we_o have_v a_o sure_a word_n to_o fly_v to_o for_o direction_n and_o many_o great_a and_o evident_a principle_n as_o here_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n etc._n etc._n to_o give_v we_o light_n in_o the_o dark_a point_n that_o depend_v upon_o they_o and_o in_o such_o a_o case_n it_o be_v dangerous_a gather_v our_o information_n about_o truth_n or_o duty_n or_o
impartial_o search_v after_o the_o truth_n by_o study_n but_o with_o patience_n not_o set_v god_n a_o time_n for_o his_o resolution_n as_o for_o my_o twenty_o argument_n which_o you_o say_v he_o be_v refer_v to_o i_o partly_o consider_v what_o they_o make_v for_o before_o i_o set_v they_o down_o they_o prove_v a_o necessity_n of_o profession_n of_o consent_n in_o all_o adult_n covenanter_n but_o yet_o parent_n may_v profess_v their_o consent_n to_o their_o child_n covenanting_a or_o engagement_n the_o parent_n be_v the_o believer_n and_o the_o consenter_n and_o ergo_fw-la must_v be_v the_o professor_n they_o have_v power_n of_o devote_v and_o give_v up_o and_o engage_v their_o child_n to_o god_n i_o will_v mr._n l._n can_v tell_v i_o when_o the_o privilege_n and_o duty_n of_o parent_n enter_v their_o child_n into_o the_o holy_a covenant_n with_o god_n and_o solemnize_n this_o do_v cease_v let_v he_o answer_v i_o but_o that_o one_o question_v well_o and_o prove_v it_o and_o i_o will_v be_v of_o his_o mind_n but_o this_o be_v beside_o my_o intent_n it_o will_v not_o prove_v that_o infant_n be_v not_o save_v because_o it_o be_v say_v so_o oft_o that_o he_o that_o believe_v shall_v not_o perish_v and_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v condemn_v already_o and_o shall_v be_v damn_v etc._n etc._n no_o more_o will_v it_o prove_v that_o infant_n that_o profess_v not_o and_o believe_v not_o may_v not_o be_v enter_v by_o profess_v parent_n into_o covenant_n with_o god_n as_o undoubted_o till_o christ_n time_n they_o be_v because_o profession_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o adult_n as_o the_o parent_n will_v dispose_v of_o they_o for_o their_o good_a so_o the_o parent_n profession_n be_v enough_o but_o i_o come_v to_o my_o conclusion_n i_o be_o no_o prophet_n but_o i_o hope_v god_n have_v give_v mr._n l._n his_o light_n and_o his_o trial_n yet_o for_o high_a end_n and_o suffer_v he_o to_o delay_v his_o relinquishment_n of_o the_o schism_n that_o he_o may_v be_v more_o serviceable_a to_o the_o church_n in_o help_v to_o heal_v the_o common_a breach_n to_o which_o end_n i_o make_v this_o motion_n to_o he_o and_o tell_v he_o from_o i_o i_o think_v it_o be_v of_o god_n and_o will_v produce_v his_o comfort_n 1._o if_o he_o desire_v it_o i_o will_v present_o send_v he_o a_o model_n of_o agreement_n between_o the_o church_n of_o the_o poedobaptist_n and_o anabaptist_n as_o common_o call_v in_o order_n to_o their_o charitable_a brotherly_a communion_n and_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o common_a truth_n that_o it_o suffer_v not_o by_o our_o division_n this_o he_o and_o i_o will_v subscribe_v to_o and_o then_o i_o doubt_v not_o to_o get_v mr._n tomb_n to_o subscribe_v it_o and_o next_o i_o will_v get_v all_o our_o association_n to_o subscribe_v it_o and_o next_o let_v mr._n t._n and_o he_o get_v what_o other_o of_o the_o re-baptised_n to_o subscribe_v it_o that_o will_n if_o none_o but_o he_o and_o i_o do_v it_o we_o will_v publish_v it_o and_o shame_v the_o world_n into_o a_o peace_n or_o do_v our_o part_n and_o methinks_v i_o foresee_v great_a benefit_n that_o will_v ensue_v more_o than_o this_o paper_n will_v hold_v to_o enumerate_v 2._o when_o this_o agreement_n be_v publish_v mr._n l._n shall_v also_o publish_v his_o argument_n and_o i_o my_o reason_n for_o our_o agreement_n 3._o when_o this_o be_v do_v let_v mr._n l._n become_v the_o pastor_n of_o a_o church_n that_o be_v mix_v of_o the_o baptise_a and_o rebaptise_v if_o it_o may_v be_v if_o not_o at_o least_o a_o public_a preacher_n in_o a_o convenient_a station_n for_o i_o see_v that_o light_n in_o his_o argumentation_n that_o he_o may_v not_o hide_v and_o that_o god_n will_v never_o suffer_v he_o to_o cast_v off_o and_o go_v against_o but_o at_o his_o peril_n which_o i_o can_v fear_v dear_a mrs._n l._n receive_v your_o letter_n near_o bedtime_n on_o saturday_n night_n i_o think_v it_o no_o sin_n to_o make_v it_o part_n of_o this_o lord_n day_n be_v work_v to_o return_v you_o this_o answer_n which_o i_o desire_v you_o to_o accept_v from_o and_o pray_v for_o your_o brother_n in_o the_o covenant_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n rich._n baxter_n aug._n 22._o 1658._o if_o mr._n l._n look_v into_o my_o book_n for_o infant_n baptism_n let_v he_o know_v that_o i_o much_o repent_v of_o the_o harsh_a language_n in_o it_o but_o not_o of_o the_o main_a matter_n london_n the_o 16_o of_o sept._n 1658._o honour_a sir_n i_o perceive_v my_o wife_n have_v unknown_a to_o i_o send_v you_o my_o paper_n touch_v free_a communion_n with_o all_o saint_n which_o god_n know_v my_o heart_n and_o soul_n be_v in_o and_o since_o the_o matter_n be_v so_o well_o receive_v by_o you_o as_o appeareth_z by_o your_o kind_a answer_n and_o my_o own_o particular_a case_n so_o affectionate_o tender_v by_o you_o i_o be_o encourage_v to_o further_a converse_n and_o indeed_o do_v welcome_a your_o overture_n of_o a_o love_a correspondency_n with_o many_o thanks_o both_o to_o god_n and_o yourself_o it_o be_v a_o rare_a thing_n to_o find_v man_n of_o part_n learning_n and_o great_a ability_n clothe_v with_o bowel_n of_o mercy_n or_o humbleness_n of_o mind_n psal._n 113._o 5_o 6._o the_o prophet_n speak_v in_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o almighty_a that_o though_o he_o be_v high_a yet_o humble_v himself_o to_o consider_v the_o thing_n on_o earth_n yea_o even_o the_o poor_a on_o the_o dunghill_n sit_v in_o dust_n god_n height_n hinder_v not_o he_o but_o man_n do_v they_o ordinary_o though_o not_o in_o itself_o not_o as_o a_o cause_n but_o as_o a_o occasion_n through_o the_o corruption_n that_o be_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o best_a it_o may_v be_v the_o god_n and_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o i_o have_v seek_v with_o fast_v prayer_n and_o tear_n have_v appoint_v you_o to_o interpret_v his_o wonderful_a deal_n with_o i_o and_o to_o show_v i_o my_o uprightness_n i_o mean_v what_o he_o will_v account_v so_o he_o that_o can_v do_v so_o will_v be_v a_o interpreter_n one_o of_o a_o thousand_o to_o i_o that_o walk_v in_o darkness_n and_o see_v little_a light_n o_o that_o i_o know_v the_o mind_n and_o will_n of_o god_n in_o my_o difficult_a case_n happy_a shall_v i_o be_v i_o have_v this_o comfort_n in_o my_o affliction_n that_o my_o will_n be_v perfect_o subdue_v to_o god_n i_o will_v go_v his_o way_n if_o i_o can_v tell_v where_o it_o lay_v but_o alas_o i_o can_v find_v it_o i_o make_v my_o moan_n to_o the_o almighty_a but_o he_o seem_v to_o carry_v it_o severe_o towards_o i_o instead_o of_o make_v straight_o path_n for_o my_o foot_n upon_o my_o earnest_a solicitation_n he_o leave_v i_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o torment_a fear_n that_o you_o may_v the_o better_o know_v what_o to_o say_v to_o i_o i_o shall_v as_o brief_o as_o i_o can_v tell_v you_o my_o case_n my_o understanding_n be_v enlighten_v that_o all_o saint_n as_o saint_n aught_o to_o hold_v church_n communion_n against_o what_o i_o have_v foolish_o print_v for_o which_o i_o loathe_v myself_o and_o abhor_v the_o sight_n of_o it_o i_o set_v myself_o to_o consider_v other_o event_n that_o lead_v i_o to_o that_o narrowness_n of_o spirit_n at_o last_o come_v to_o doubt_v whether_o god_n be_v please_v with_o rebaptising_a to_o the_o rejection_n of_o infant_n out_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n but_o be_o out_o of_o doubt_n in_o this_o that_o to_o rebaptize_v any_o now_o do_v denominate_v their_o visible_a saintship_n or_o give_v right_a to_o church_n fellowship_n and_o so_o to_o part_v they_o from_o all_o the_o believer_n in_o christ_n not_o so_o baptise_a as_o the_o world_n as_o not_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o god_n be_v a_o most_o pernicious_a error_n and_o a_o great_a evil_n further_o i_o find_v fault_n with_o popular_a government_n in_o the_o church_n as_o it_o confound_v the_o definition_n of_o governor_n and_o govern_v also_o that_o in_o the_o settle_a state_n of_o the_o church_n no_o man_n ought_v to_o take_v a_o personal_a charge_n but_o person_n both_o able_a and_o whole_o devote_v to_o the_o work_n that_o to_o be_v a_o merchant_n and_o a_o minister_n do_v not_o agree_v except_o in_o case_n of_o invincible_a necessity_n that_o in_o the_o levitical_a order_n appoint_v by_o god_n there_o be_v a_o moral_a equity_n respect_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n both_o separation_n to_o the_o work_n and_o and_o maintenance_n in_o it_o and_o however_o people_n may_v imagine_v the_o contrary_a principle_n and_o practice_n prove_v dishonourable_a to_o god_n and_o destructive_a to_o religion_n in_o the_o multitude_n of_o these_o thought_n i_o begin_v to_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o i_o to_o hold_v my_o relation_n to_o the_o people_n i_o now_o serve_v and_o
that_o god_n enlighten_v i_o in_o these_o thing_n on_o purpose_n to_o appear_v against_o they_o and_o lead_v other_o out_o of_o they_o in_o this_o confidence_n i_o grow_v bold_a and_o begin_v to_o preach_v something_o public_o that_o i_o know_v will_v turn_v the_o congregation_n against_o i_o and_o so_o prepare_v i_o for_o my_o return_n to_o mr._n john_n goodw_v from_o who_o i_o separate_v about_o five_o year_n ago_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v as_o i_o begin_v to_o widen_v from_o the_o church_n i_o relate_v to_o my_o soul_n sink_v into_o deep_a mire_n where_o there_o be_v no_o stand_n into_o a_o horrible_a pit_n the_o arrow_n of_o the_o lord_n stick_v fast_o in_o i_o and_o his_o hand_n press_v i_o sore_o the_o poison_n of_o they_o drink_v up_o my_o spirit_n and_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o lord_n set_v themselves_o in_o array_n against_o i_o instead_o of_o the_o smile_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o comfortable_a testimony_n of_o conscience_n as_o to_o a_o service_n please_v to_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n i_o meet_v with_o hellish_a horror_n temptation_n to_o d●spair_v of_o god_n love_n to_o i_o and_o much_o ado_n to_o keep_v my_o head_n above_o water_n whereupon_o i_o humble_v myself_o under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o stop_v my_o present_a prosecution_n of_o my_o purpose_n which_o be_v to_o have_v burn_v my_o book_n to_o have_v return_v to_o mr._n goodwin_n again_o to_o have_v provide_v my_o paper_n with_o some_o addition_n and_o a_o solemn_a address_n to_o all_o the_o church_n under_o that_o form_n but_o meet_v with_o this_o wonderful_a opposition_n from_o god_n my_o hand_n hang_v down_o and_o my_o knee_n feeble_a i_o be_o in_o a_o amaze_n not_o know_v what_o to_o say_v think_v or_o do_v but_o this_o i_o have_v find_v that_o as_o widen_v from_o the_o people_n i_o be_o with_o bring_v we_o great_a distress_n so_o join_v with_o they_o again_o assuage_v the_o water_n of_o my_o affliction_n upon_o these_o term_n i_o stand_v not_o dare_v to_o stir_v from_o they_o nor_o do_v any_o thing_n to_o prejudice_v my_o esteem_n with_o they_o but_o yet_o not_o satisfy_v neither_o through_o fear_n least_o by_o go_v on_o the_o way_n i_o be_o engage_v in_o i_o shall_v countenance_v a_o by-way_n not_o please_v to_o god_n and_o thus_o by_o degree_n i_o have_v open_v to_o you_o the_o perfect_a state_n of_o my_o case_n but_o it_o be_v because_o you_o will_v ask_v i_o what_o matter_n the_o enemy_n if_o it_o be_v the_o enemy_n wrought_v on_o to_o make_v i_o so_o great_a affliction_n upon_o it_o one_o thing_n be_v some_o thought_n of_o heart_n that_o i_o have_v have_v concern_v my_o child_n that_o make_v it_o indeed_o a_o matter_n desirable_a to_o i_o to_o be_v out_o of_o this_o way_n but_o my_o conscience_n tell_v i_o the_o thought_n be_v lawful_a and_o good_a and_o that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o least_o influence_n in_o the_o change_n of_o my_o judgement_n another_o thing_n be_v the_o way_n we_o be_v in_o be_v a_o very_a narrow_a way_n and_o we_o have_v some_o christian_n my_o dear_a and_o intimate_a friend_n that_o walk_v in_o it_o that_o excel_v in_o holiness_n and_o be_v go_v somewhat_o far_o out_o of_o the_o world_n with_o their_o heart_n through_o their_o faith_n and_o sense_n of_o future_a thing_n than_o ordinary_o christian_n go_v these_o all_o frown_v on_o i_o and_o then_o 3._o the_o way_n i_o shall_v return_v to_o be_v more_o open_a and_o the_o person_n less_o sensible_a oh_o sir_n there_o be_v abundance_n have_v knowledge_n but_o there_o be_v but_o a_o few_o have_v a_o rich_a sense_n 4._o i_o shall_v leave_v the_o poor_a and_o go_v among_o the_o rich_a that_o mind_v more_o the_o adorn_v of_o the_o outward_a man_n than_o the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o christ_n ordinary_o whereas_o my_o spirit_n be_v much_o set_v against_o gay_a apparel_n and_o follow_v of_o fashion_n not_o but_o that_o mr._n goodwin_n church_n be_v as_o sober_a as_o most_o i_o think_v as_o any_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v it_o be_v a_o sin_n in_o my_o apprehension_n at_o least_o that_o few_o be_v sufficient_o sensible_a of_o 5._o my_o conscience_n tell_v i_o that_o as_o for_o parish_n there_o be_v no_o proceed_n in_o parish_n that_o be_v worthy_a the_o name_n of_o church-proceeding_n ordinary_o there_o be_v indeed_o in_o some_o few_o a_o able_a man_n to_o preach_v and_o the_o people_n go_v to_o hear_v but_o as_o for_o watch_v visit_a and_o nourish_v and_o such_o like_a faithful_a proceed_n for_o the_o health_n of_o soul_n there_o be_v but_o few_o lie_v any_o such_o thing_n to_o heart_n so_o that_o the_o parish_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v but_o like_o a_o dead_a corpse_n without_o life_n the_o live_a stone_n be_v go_v into_o one_o gather_v church_n or_o other_o but_o i_o confess_v i_o do_v not_o find_v they_o bless_v after_o 6._o another_o thing_n be_v the_o danger_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o our_o friend_n will_v be_v in_o upon_o my_o leave_v they_o 7._o the_o make_n of_o thousand_o of_o heart_n sad_a who_o have_v their_o eye_n upon_o i_o i_o perceive_v your_o proposition_n at_o the_o end_n of_o your_o letter_n alas_o for_o i_o i_o shall_v be_v fit_a for_o nothing_o except_o god_n be_v please_v to_o heal_v my_o wound_a spirit_n that_o be_v my_o great_a care_n for_o the_o present_a how_o to_o behave_v myself_o to_o obtain_v the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n if_o god_n will_v go_v before_o i_o and_o lead_v i_o i_o will_v do_v any_o thing_n the_o joy_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v our_o strength_n but_o however_o i_o thank_v god_n that_o enable_v i_o to_o hold_v out_o wait_v i_o be_o sure_a my_o soul_n hunger_v and_o thirst_v after_o righteousness_n more_o than_o all_o riches_n and_o therefore_o i_o be_o under_o the_o promise_n of_o be_v fill_v at_o last_o i_o have_v indeed_o cover_v to_o serve_v god_n and_o secret_o plot_v how_o to_o cast_v my_o affair_n so_o that_o i_o may_v be_v free_a for_o it_o i_o have_v in_o order_n to_o the_o devotion_n of_o my_o soul_n to_o the_o word_n and_o prayer_n whole_o take_v myself_o off_o all_o converse_n with_o the_o world_n and_o suppose_v i_o shall_v not_o long_o stay_v where_o i_o be_o i_o be_v consider_v where_o i_o may_v be_v useful_a at_o last_o i_o think_v of_o go_v into_o some_o country_n with_o the_o leave_n of_o mr._n goodwin_n church_n where_o there_o be_v much_o people_n and_o no_o mean_n and_o there_o to_o seat_v myself_o have_v a_o good_a estate_n of_o my_o own_o by_o which_o i_o can_v not_o only_o serve_v free_o but_o do_v much_o good_a this_o i_o think_v will_v have_v be_v please_v to_o god_n i_o resolve_v not_o to_o meddle_v with_o the_o point_n of_o baptism_n one_o way_n or_o other_o but_o have_v strive_v the_o conversion_n of_o soul_n to_o jesus_n christ_n but_o his_o late_a frown_n on_o i_o make_v i_o fear_n he_o will_v take_v no_o delight_n in_o i_o but_o however_o since_o i_o call_v he_o father_n it_o be_v fit_a i_o shall_v say_v thy_o will_v be_v do_v even_o so_o father_n let_v it_o be_v amen_n amen_n if_o you_o will_v draw_v up_o such_o a_o model_n of_o agreement_n as_o you_o write_v of_o i_o know_v not_o how_o much_o it_o may_v conduce_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n i_o believe_v some_o here_o will_v subscribe_v it_o i_o hope_v many_o i_o propound_v it_o to_o mr._n manton_n he_o say_v he_o shall_v like_v such_o a_o thing_n very_o well_o the_o lord_n preserve_v your_o life_n health_n and_o strength_n that_o you_o may_v live_v to_o do_v god_n more_o service_n your_o zeal_n provoke_v many_o i_o be_o full_o persuade_v and_o i_o think_v upon_o good_a ground_n that_o have_v the_o minister_n take_v the_o course_n that_o i_o hear_v you_o take_v at_o kidderminster_n it_o have_v prevent_v separation_n the_o good_a lord_n fill_v you_o with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o enable_v you_o to_o do_v yet_o more_o abundant_o dear_a sir_n i_o entreat_v you_o to_o use_v your_o interest_n in_o heaven_n for_o i_o that_o my_o faith_n may_v be_v strengthen_v which_o the_o enemy_n lay_v at_o daily_a to_o enlighten_v my_o understanding_n to_o give_v i_o good_a knowledge_n and_o good_a judgement_n to_o deliver_v my_o conscience_n from_o unnecessary_a scruple_n to_o manifest_v his_o love_n to_o i_o and_o increase_v my_o love_n to_o he_o and_o if_o it_o be_v his_o will_n to_o use_v and_o comfort_v i_o in_o his_o service_n which_o he_o know_v be_v meat_n and_o drink_n to_o i_o who_o be_o your_o affectionate_a friend_n and_o brother_n in_o christ_n jesus_n tho._n lamb_n i_o hope_v short_o to_o hear_v from_o you_o dear_a mr._n baxter_n i_o do_v return_v my_o many_o thanks_o for_o your_o excellent_a letter_n which_o i_o have_v receive_v with_o
the_o public_a lecture_n 4._o in_o the_o strength_n of_o god_n take_v courage_n to_o preach_v to_o the_o congregation_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a and_o its_o unity_n from_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 26._o and_o from_o thence_o to_o show_v they_o the_o schismatical_a state_n wherein_o we_o be_v which_o sermon_n have_v bring_v the_o anabaptist_n about_o my_o ear_n from_o other_o part_n four_o or_o five_o of_o they_o oppose_v i_o the_o last_o first_o day_n after_o my_o sermon_n and_o because_o of_o what_o i_o have_v preach_v the_o day_n before_o half_o my_o own_o congregation_n never_o come_v to_o hear_v i_o their_o heart_n be_v quite_o go_v from_o i_o not_o any_o of_o the_o church_n come_v to_o see_v i_o or_o ask_v i_o any_o question_n now_o 3._o and_o last_o as_o to_o the_o present_a frame_n of_o my_o spirit_n and_o state_n it_o be_v thus_o as_o to_o the_o unite_n work_v i_o have_v in_o hand_n i_o thank_v god_n i_o be_o bold_a and_o be_o wait_v on_o god_n upon_o who_o influence_n i_o live_v to_o guide_v i_o in_o thought_n word_n and_o deed_n about_o it_o but_o i_o have_v late_o be_v sore_o trouble_v with_o one_o temptation_n what_o shall_v i_o preach_v or_o write_v any_o thing_n for_o concern_v religion_n i_o can_v endure_v torment_n for_o christ_n if_o i_o shall_v be_v tried●_n it_o be_v not_o for_o such_o faint_a heart_a creature_n as_o i_o to_o meddle_v in_o such_o work_n now_o the_o conscience_n of_o this_o that_o indeed_o i_o be_o a_o poor_a creature_n weak_a both_o in_o faith_n and_o spirit_n have_v make_v way_n for_o this_o temptation_n to_o seize_v upon_o i_o to_o the_o sadden_v of_o my_o soul_n and_o to_o the_o enfeeble_v of_o i_o to_o so_o great_a a_o degree_n that_o for_o this_o two_o or_o three_o day_n i_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n as_o for_o my_o present_a state_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o church_n i_o be_o still_o with_o they_o and_o purpose_n god_n willing_a to_o morrow_n to_o apply_v what_o i_o have_v preach_v about_o schism_n the_o next_o wednesday_n be_v appoint_v to_o debate_v thing_n our_o friend_n call_v in_o the_o head_n of_o other_o church_n to_o their_o assistance_n and_o i_o hear_v those_o from_o abroad_o intend_v to_o stir_v up_o our_o friend_n to_o cast_v i_o out_o of_o the_o church_n what_o the_o issue_n will_v be_v god_n know_v and_o what_o to_o do_v with_o myself_o afterward_o i_o know_v not_o i_o know_v i_o shall_v be_v sore_o beset_v by_o the_o enemy_n but_o my_o hope_n be_v in_o god_n that_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v i_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o that_o i_o be_o able_a and_o that_o my_o merciful_a redeemer_n and_o high_a priest_n will_v be_v touch_v with_o the_o feel_n of_o my_o infirmity_n himself_o be_v tempt_v he_o know_v how_o to_o succour_v those_o that_o be_v tempt_v heb._n 4._o 16._o say_v grace_n have_v a_o throne_n and_o 5._o 20_o 21._o say_v grace_n reign_v oh_o bless_a be_v god_n 1_o ephes._n say_v he_o have_v give_v he_o to_o be_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n not_o to_o govern_v it_o only_o but_o to_o influence_n it_o with_o all_o necessary_a supply_n to_o fill_v all_o in_o all_o he_o suppose_v while_o we_o be_v here_o we_o shall_v be_v in_o a_o indigent_a condition_n divers_a way_n but_o at_o that_o throne_n where_o grace_n reign_v there_o be_v grace_n enough_o to_o supply_v all_o our_o want_n therefore_o 1_o joh._n of_o his_o fullness_n we_o have_v all_o receive_a grace_n for_o ●race_n and_o because_o such_o poor_a creature_n as_o i_o sensible_a of_o much_o unworthiness_n be_v very_o apt_a to_o doubt_v our_o entertainment_n and_o fear_v where_o no_o fear_n be_v bless_a jesus_n call_v we_o to_o come_v bold_o sir_n when_o i_o shall_v have_v do_v my_o work_n where_o i_o be_o which_o i_o believe_v will_v be_v short_o i_o can_v be_v content_a to_o return_v to_o mr._n goodwin_n if_o god_n will_v like_v it_o and_o that_o my_o reunion_n with_o that_o church_n will_v not_o hinder_v my_o main_n work_n they_o have_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n make_v a_o vote_n to_o receive_v i_o when_o my_o spirit_n shall_v be_v free_a to_o return_v and_o indeed_o always_o have_v manifest_v much_o love_n to_o i_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v i_o be_o so_o clog_v with_o scruple_n about_o popular_a government_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n that_o though_o to_o will_v be_v present_a with_o i_o to_o perform_v i_o find_v not_o mr._n goodwin_n never_o renounce_v his_o ordination_n to_o take_v it_o from_o the_o people_n and_o be_v for_o free_a communion_n and_o say_v will_v join_v in_o such_o a_o unite_n draught_n as_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v now_o draw_v up_o and_o prosecute_v present_o and_o which_o i_o will_v labour_v in_o god_n willing_a to_o promote_v when_o it_o come_v here_o that_o which_o main_o stick_v with_o i_o in_o respect_n of_o return_v to_o mr._n goodwin_n be_v that_o when_o i_o shall_v publish_v what_o be_v in_o my_o heart_n about_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n malady_n in_o england_n i_o shall_v reflect_v upon_o the_o independent_a principle_n exceed_o now_o my_o fear_n be_v that_o my_o relation_n to_o they_o will_v be_v a_o curb_n to_o i_o i_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v but_o my_o eye_n be_v up_o towards_o god_n i_o be_o sure_a i_o have_v reap_v benefit_n by_o your_o counsel_n and_o hope_v i_o have_v have_v a_o interest_n in_o your_o prayer_n which_o i_o still_o beg_v be_v confident_a god_n will_v hear_v you_o sir_n the_o lord_n preserve_v your_o life_n and_o bless_v your_o labour_n i_o hope_v it_o will_v not_o be_v long_o ere_o i_o shall_v hear_v from_o you_o who_o be_o your_o affectionate_a friend_n and_o brother_n in_o christ_n jesus_n tho._n lamb_n from_o my_o house_n in_o great_a st._n bartholomew_n my_o wife_n present_v her_o love_n with_o many_o thanks_o to_o you_o to_o his_o very_a worthy_a friend_n mr._n r._n baxter_n preacher_n of_o god_n word_n at_o kidderminster_n in_o worcestershire_n dear_a brother_n if_o i_o understand_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o way_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o can_v perceive_v by_o the_o effect_n below_o what_o soul_n the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n do_v shine_v upon_o you_o owe_v much_o to_o his_o love_n and_o be_v use_v by_o he_o as_o he_o use_v the_o dear_a of_o his_o own_o what_o a_o mercy_n be_v his_o illumination_n and_o how_o much_o great_a his_o quicken_n life_n that_o possess_v you_o with_o love_n to_o god_n and_o man_n o_o do_v we_o but_o know_v when_o we_o feel_v one_o spark_n of_o love_n to_o god_n and_o his_o servant_n in_o our_o soul_n from_o what_o a_o infinite_a love_n it_o come_v and_o to_o what_o it_o tend_v and_o what_o it_o signify_v sure_o there_o will_v be_v more_o study_v comparative_o for_o charity_n that_o edifi_v than_o for_o the_o knowledge_n that_o puff_v up_o if_o your_o work_n for_o god_n do_v cost_v you_o nothing_o it_o will_v not_o be_v so_o comfortable_a to_o you_o symptomatical_o or_o effective_o though_o i_o confess_v it_o be_v hard_a to_o bear_v the_o censure_n of_o godly_a man_n than_o of_o the_o world_n yet_o the_o ●iger_n the_o trial_n the_o full_a will_v be_v the_o evidence_n of_o sincerity_n in_o submission_n and_o the_o great_a that_o grace_n and_o peace_n that_o be_v use_v to_o be_v give_v in_o for_o encouragement_n or_o reward_n and_o yet_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o that_o your_o trial_n here_o be_v not_o of_o the_o great_a when_o your_o recovery_n be_v like_a to_o procure_v you_o the_o esteem_n of_o ten_o if_o not_o a_o hundred_o of_o god_n servant_n for_o one_o that_o you_o be_v like_a to_o lose_v and_o i_o be_o glad_a that_o you_o give_v your_o censurer_n so_o good_a a_o description_n for_o if_o they_o be_v such_o as_o you_o describe_v they_o i_o be_o persuade_v many_o of_o they_o will_v come_v after_o you_o in_o time_n and_o be_v it_o not_o a_o great_a encouragement_n to_o you_o that_o your_o brother_n and_o fellow-labourer_n come_v over_o with_o you_o and_o so_o your_o hand_n be_v strengthen_v and_o half_a your_o opposition_n take_v off_o and_o turn_v into_o comfort_n for_o though_o i_o never_o tell_v he_o of_o your_o letter_n to_o i_o nor_o you_o of_o he_o yet_o i_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o you_o know_v each_o other_o mind_n and_o way_n and_o yet_o you_o know_v that_o he_o be_v satisfy_v and_o resolve_v for_o catholic_n communion_n i_o pray_v you_o go_v together_o and_o do_v what_o you_o do_v as_o one_o man_n while_o you_o have_v one_o mind_n and_o heart_n i_o perceive_v the_o sign_n of_o judgement_n and_o charity_n also_o in_o he_o i_o beseech_v you_o also_o both_o to_o hold_v on_o your_o charity_n even_o to_o they_o that_o be_v offend_v with_o
peaceable_a reformation_n among_o we_o than_o to_o break_v down_o this_o partition-wall_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o provoke_v more_o than_o this_o do_v to_o deny_v such_o church_n to_o be_v true_a church_n of_o christ._n for_o do_v but_o think_v with_o yourselves_o and_o i_o will_v give_v you_o a_o familiar_a example_n you_o come_v to_o a_o man_n who_o you_o think_v to_o be_v a_o godly_a man_n you_o tell_v he_o he_o have_v these_o and_o these_o sin_n in_o he_o and_o they_o be_v great_a one_o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v hear_v though_o you_o tell_v he_o he_o be_v a_o saint_n and_o acknowledge_v he_o so_o but_o if_o you_o come_v to_o he_o and_o say_v beside_o this_o you_o be_v a_o limb_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o you_o have_v no_o grace_n in_o you_o this_o provoke_v all_o in_o a_o man_n when_o there_o be_v any_o ground_n in_o himself_o to_o think_v so_o or_o in_o another_o to_o judge_v he_o so_o so_o it_o be_v here_o come_v to_o church_n and_o say_v you_o have_v these_o defect_n among_o you_o and_o these_o thing_n to_o be_v reform_v but_o if_o you_o will_v come_v and_o say_v your_o church_n and_o your_o minister_n be_v antichristian_a and_o come_v from_o babylon_n there_o be_v nothing_o provoke_v more_o therefore_o if_o there_o be_v a_o truth_n in_o it_o as_o i_o believe_v there_o be_v men_n shall_v be_v zealous_a to_o express_v it_o for_o this_o be_v the_o great_a partition_n wall_n that_o hinder_v of_o twain_o make_v one_o then_o again_o this_o be_v that_o which_o i_o consider_v and_o it_o be_v a_o great_a consideration_n also_o i_o know_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v give_v his_o people_n light_n in_o matter_n of_o this_o nature_n by_o degree_n thousand_o of_o good_a soul_n that_o have_v be_v breed_v up_o and_o bear_v in_o our_o assembly_n and_o enjoy_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o have_v do_v it_o comfortable_o can_v sudden_o take_v in_o other_o principle_n you_o must_v wait_v on_o christ_n to_o do_v it_o in_o this_o case_n man_n be_v not_o to_o be_v wrought_v off_o by_o falsehood_n god_n have_v no_o need_n of_o they_o no_o rather_o till_o man_n do_v take_v in_o light_n you_o shall_v give_v they_o all_o that_o be_v comfortable_a in_o the_o condition_n they_o be_v in_o we_o shall_v acknowledge_v every_o good_a thing_n in_o every_o man_n in_o every_o church_n in_o every_o thing_n and_o that_o be_v a_o way_n to_o work_v upon_o man_n and_o to_o prevail_v with_o they_o as_o it_o be_v philem_n v._n 6._o that_o the_o communication_n of_o thy_o faith_n may_v become_v effectual_a acknowledgement_n of_o every_o good_a thing_n which_o be_v in_o you_o in_o christ_n jesus_n it_o be_v that_o which_o build_v man_n up_o by_o acknowledgement_n of_o every_o good_a thing_n that_o be_v in_o they_o last_o the_o last_o inconvenience_n be_v this_o it_o do_v deprive_v man_n of_o all_o those_o gift_n that_o be_v find_v among_o our_o minister_n and_o in_o this_o kingdom_n that_o they_o can_v hold_v any_o communion_n or_o fellowship_n with_o they_o so_o that_o i_o profess_v myself_o as_o zealous_a in_o this_o point_n as_o in_o any_o other_o i_o know_v and_o for_o my_o part_n this_o i_o say_v and_o i_o say_v it_o with_o much_o integrity_n i_o never_o yet_o take_v up_o religion_n by_o party_n in_o the_o lump_n i_o have_v find_v by_o trial_n of_o thing_n that_o there_o be_v some_o truth_n on_o all_o side_n i_o have_v find_v holiness_n where_o you_o will_v little_o think_v it_o and_o so_o likewise_o truth_n and_o i_o have_v learn_v this_o principle_n which_o i_o hope_v i_o shall_v never_o lay_v down_o till_o i_o be_o swallow_v up_o of_o imortality_n and_o that_o be_v that_o which_o i_o say_v before_o to_o acknowledge_v every_o good_a thing_n and_o hold_v communion_n with_o it_o in_o man_n in_o church_n or_o whatsoever_o else_o i_o learn_v this_o from_o paul_n i_o learn_v this_o from_o jesus_n christ_n himself_n he_o fill_v all_o in_o all_o he_o be_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n and_o fill_v they_o in_o his_o ordinance_n to_o this_o day_n and_o where_o jesus_n christ_n fill_v why_o shall_v we_o deny_v a_o acknowledgement_n and_o a_o right_a hand_n of_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n my_o brethren_n this_o rule_n that_o i_o have_v now_o mention_v which_o i_o profess_v i_o have_v live_v by_o and_o shall_v do_v while_o i_o live_v i_o know_v i_o shall_v never_o please_v man_n in_o it_o why_o it_o be_v plain_a for_o this_o be_v the_o nature_n and_o condition_n of_o all_o mankind_n if_o a_o man_n dissent_v from_o other_o in_o one_o thing_n he_o lose_v himself_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o therefore_o it_o a_o man_n do_v take_v what_o be_v good_a of_o all_o side_n he_o be_v apt_a to_o lose_v they_o all_o but_o he_o please_v christ_n by_o it_o and_o so_o i_o will_v for_o this_o particular_a thus_o far_o dr._n t._n goodwin_n prefaced_a and_o commend_v by_o thankful_a owen_n and_o james_n barron_n worthy_a and_o peaceable_a man_n decease_v the_o transcriber_n crave_v judicious_a resolution_n of_o these_o two_o question_n 1._o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o be_v a_o fix_a member_n of_o a_o gross_o schismatical_a church_n that_o be_v guilty_a of_o such_o separate_n from_o slander_v almost_o all_o other_o as_o be_v here_o reprove_v when_o communion_n with_o better_a may_v be_v have_v quest._n 2._o how_o far_o other_o be_v bind_v to_o reprove_v and_o testify_v against_o such_o divide_v principle_n minister_n and_o church_n especial_o after_o and_o under_o doleful_a experience_n of_o their_o sinful_a calamitous_a effect_n dear_a brother_n i_o have_v feel_v that_o in_o my_o own_o soul_n and_o see_v that_o upon_o my_o brethren_n for_o these_o two_o or_o three_o year_n last_o pass_v which_o persuade_v i_o that_o god_n be_v about_o the_o heal_n of_o our_o wound_n have_v communicate_v more_o heal_a principle_n and_o affection_n and_o pour_v out_o more_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o catholic_n love_n and_o peace_n than_o i_o have_v perceive_v heretofore_o love_n be_v arisen_a and_o shine_v upon_o the_o child_n of_o the_o day_n and_o your_o congeal_a stiffness_n begin_v to_o vanish_v and_o a_o christian_a tenderness_n to_o succeed_v the_o prince_n of_o peace_n erect_v his_o banner_n and_o the_o son_n of_o peace_n flock_n in_o apace_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o be_v the_o last_o but_o a_o misery_n to_o be_v none_o god_n will_v bring_v his_o divide_a distract_a servant_n near_a together_o and_o it_o be_v pity_n he_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o bear_v down_o any_o resist_a saint_n among_o the_o instrument_n of_o satan_n and_o that_o any_o of_o their_o carcase_n shall_v be_v find_v on_o the_o ground_n when_o he_o conquer_v the_o enemy_n of_o peace_n the_o lord_n be_v about_o reveal_v to_o his_o servant_n the_o error_n of_o their_o consoriousness_n harshness_n uncharitableness_n and_o division_n and_o how_o grievous_o they_o have_v wrong_v he_o and_o themselves_o by_o depart_v so_o far_o from_o christian_a love_n and_o unity_n he_o will_v let_v they_o see_v how_o much_o of_o the_o cause_n be_v secret_a and_o undiscerned_a pride_n and_o selfconceitedness_a and_o want_v of_o holy_a christian_a love_n while_o little_o be_v pretend_v or_o discern_v but_o strictness_n and_o obedience_n he_o will_v show_v they_o more_o full_o wherein_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o grace_n and_o holy_a obedience_n do_v consist_v and_o teach_v they_o by_o the_o impress_n of_o his_o spirit_n what_o he_o so_o emphatical_o command_v they_o by_o his_o word_n to_o go_v learn_v what_o that_o mean_v i_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o not_o sacrifice_n it_o be_v pity_n we_o shall_v not_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o word_n so_o plain_a but_o it_o be_v sin_n and_o shame_n as_o well_o as_o pity_n that_o we_o have_v study_v they_o no_o better_o after_o such_o a_o memorandum_n and_o command_n as_o this_o but_o many_o of_o god_n servant_n have_v in_o the_o point_n of_o unity_n and_o peace_n be_v like_o those_o miserable_a soul_n that_o be_v describe_v to_o have_v eye_n and_o see_v not_o ear_n and_o hear_v not_o heart_n and_o understand_v not_o these_o bless_a precept_n of_o love_n and_o unity_n though_o none_o more_o plain_a and_o frequent_a and_o urgent_a for_o the_o time_n be_v not_o come_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v recover_v and_o heal_v though_o this_o defection_n be_v not_o in_o the_o essence_n of_o christianity_n but_o the_o degree_n nor_o for_o perpetuity_n but_o a_o time_n yet_o it_o be_v sad_a that_o such_o a_o spirit_n of_o deadness_n shall_v so_o far_o prevail_v that_o man_n inquisitive_a after_o truth_n and_o zealous_a of_o holiness_n shall_v least_o understand_v the_o plain_a near_a frequent_a precept_n and_o so_o little_o feel_v their_o obligation_n to_o such_o weighty_a duty_n that_o the_o lord_n be_v please_v to_o stir_v upon_o their_o